Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n grace_n pray_v prayer_n 8,057 5 6.5536 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A53734 Two discourses concerning the Holy Spirit, and His work the one, Of the Spirit as a comforter, the other, As He is the author of spiritual gifts ... / by ... John Owen. Owen, John, 1616-1683.; Mather, Nathanael, 1631-1697.; Owen, John, 1616-1683. Discourse of spiritual gifts. 1693 (1693) Wing O818; ESTC R2819 174,342 306

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

from_o all_o other_o individual_n by_o virtue_n of_o its_o personality_n wherefore_o upon_o this_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherein_o soever_o it_o do_v consist_v there_o be_v no_o personal_a union_n ensue_v between_o he_o and_o believer_n nor_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o such_o thing_n shall_v be_v for_o he_o and_o they_o be_v distinct_a person_n and_o must_v eternal_o abide_v so_o whilst_o their_o nature_n be_v distinct_a it_o be_v only_o the_o assumption_n of_o our_o nature_n into_o union_n with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n antecedent_n unto_o any_o individual_a personal_a subsistence_n of_o its_o own_o that_o can_v constitute_v such_o a_o union_n four_o the_o union_n and_o relation_n that_o ensue_v on_o this_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o immediate_a between_o he_o and_o believer_n but_o between_o they_o and_o jesus_n christ._n for_o he_o be_v send_v to_o dwell_v in_o they_o by_o christ_n in_o his_o name_n as_o his_o spirit_n to_o supply_v his_o room_n in_o love_n and_o grace_n towards_o they_o make_v use_n of_o his_o thing_n in_o all_o his_o effect_n and_o operation_n unto_o his_o glory_n hence_o i_o say_v be_v the_o union_n of_o believer_n with_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o with_o the_o spirit_n himself_o for_o this_o holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n manifest_v and_o act_v himself_o in_o all_o fullness_n therein_o as_o have_v be_v declare_v be_v send_v by_o he_o to_o dwell_v in_o like_a manner_n and_o act_n in_o a_o limit_a measure_n in_o all_o believer_n there_o be_v a_o mystical_a union_n thence_o arise_v between_o they_o whereof_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o bond_n and_o vital_a principle_n on_o these_o consideration_n i_o say_v it_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o be_v promise_v unto_o believer_n and_o not_o only_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o power_n and_o his_o person_n it_o be_v that_o always_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o as_o this_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n be_v a_o argument_n of_o his_o infinite_a condescension_n in_o comply_v with_o this_o part_n of_o his_o office_n and_o work_n to_o be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n and_o son_n to_o dwell_v in_o believer_n so_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a demonstration_n of_o his_o eternal_a deity_n that_o the_o one_o and_o selfsame_a person_n shall_v at_o the_o same_o time_n inhabit_v so_o many_o thousand_o of_o distinct_a person_n as_o be_v or_o be_v at_o any_o time_n of_o believer_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v fondness_n to_o imagine_v concern_v any_o one_o that_o be_v not_o absolute_o infinite_a and_o therefore_o that_o which_o some_o oppose_v as_o unmeet_a for_o he_o and_o beneath_o his_o glory_n namely_o this_o his_o inhabitation_n in_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n be_v a_o most_o illustrious_a and_o incontroulable_a demonstration_n of_o his_o eternal_a glory_n for_o none_o but_o he_o who_o be_v absolute_o immense_a in_o his_o nature_n and_o omnipresence_n can_v be_v so_o present_a with_o and_o indistant_a from_o all_o believer_n in_o the_o world_n and_o none_o but_o he_o who_o person_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o nature_n be_v infinite_a can_v personal_o equal_o inhabit_v in_o they_o all_o a_o infinite_a nature_n and_o person_n be_v require_v hereunto_o and_o in_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o incomprehensibility_n thereof_o be_v we_o to_o acquiesce_v as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o inhabitation_n which_o we_o can_v conceive_v 1._o there_o be_v very_o many_o promise_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o god_n will_v thus_o give_v the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n as_o ezek._n 36._o 27._o isa._n 59_o 21._o prov._n 1._o 23._o and_o in_o every_o place_n god_n call_v this_o promise_a spirit_n and_o as_o promise_v his_o spirit_n my_o spirit_n which_o precise_o denote_v the_o person_n of_o the_o spirit_n himself_o it_o be_v general_o apprehend_v i_o confess_v that_o in_o these_o promise_v the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v intend_v only_o as_o unto_o his_o gracious_a effect_n and_o operation_n but_o not_o as_o to_o any_o personal_a inhabitation_n and_o i_o shall_v not_o much_o contend_v upon_o these_o promise_v only_o although_o in_o some_o of_o they_o his_o person_n as_o promise_v be_v express_o distinguish_v from_o all_o his_o gracious_a effect_n but_o the_o exposition_n which_o be_v give_v of_o they_o in_o their_o accomplishment_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n will_v not_o allow_v we_o so_o to_o judge_v of_o they_o for_o 2._o we_o be_v direct_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o assure_v that_o god_n will_v give_v he_o unto_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o of_o he_o in_o a_o due_a manner_n heb._n 11._o 13._o if_o these_o word_n must_v be_v expound_v metonymical_o and_o not_o proper_o it_o must_v be_v because_o either_o 1_o they_o agree_v not_o in_o the_o letter_n with_o other_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n or_o 2_o contain_v some_o sense_n absurd_a and_o unreasonable_a or_o 3_o that_o which_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o experience_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o first_o can_v be_v say_v for_o other_o testimony_n innumerable_a concur_v with_o it_o nor_o the_o second_o as_o we_o shall_v show_v and_o for_o the_o three_o it_o be_v that_o who_o contrary_a we_o prove_v what_o be_v it_o that_o believer_n intend_v in_o that_o request_n i_o suppose_v i_o may_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o one_o petition_n wherein_o they_o be_v more_o intense_a and_o earnest_n nor_o which_o they_o more_o frequent_o insist_v upon_o as_o david_n pray_v that_o god_n will_v not_o take_v his_o holy_a spirit_n from_o he_o psal._n 51._o so_o do_v they_o that_o god_n will_v bestow_v he_o on_o they_o for_o this_o they_o do_v and_o aught_o to_o do_v even_o after_o they_o have_v receive_v he_o his_o continuance_n with_o they_o his_o evidence_n and_o manifestation_n of_o himself_o in_o and_o to_o they_o be_v the_o design_n of_o their_o continue_a supplication_n for_o he_o be_v it_o mere_o external_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o grace_n that_o they_o desire_v herein_o do_v they_o not_o always_o pray_v for_o his_o ineffable_a presence_n and_o inhabitation_n will_v any_o thought_n of_o grace_n or_o mercy_n relieve_v or_o satisfy_v they_o if_o once_o they_o apprehend_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v not_o in_o they_o or_o do_v not_o dwell_v with_o they_o although_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o form_v any_o conception_n in_o their_o mind_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o residence_n in_o they_o yet_o be_v it_o that_o which_o they_o pray_v for_o and_o without_o the_o apprehension_n whereof_o by_o faith_n they_o can_v have_v neither_o peace_n nor_o consolation_n the_o promise_n hereof_o be_v confine_v unto_o believer_n those_o that_o be_v true_o and_o real_o so_o as_o we_o show_v before_o it_o be_v their_o experience_n whereby_o its_o accomplishment_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v and_o not_o the_o presumption_n of_o such_o by_o who_o both_o the_o spirit_n himself_o and_o his_o whole_a work_n be_v despise_v 3._o and_o this_o inhabitation_n be_v that_o which_o principal_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n direct_v his_o disciple_n to_o expect_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o he_o he_o dwell_v with_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o john_n 14._o 17._o he_o do_v so_o who_o be_v the_o comforter_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n or_o as_o it_o be_v emphatical_o express_v chap._n 16._o 13._o he_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o be_v promise_v unto_o and_o he_o inhabit_v they_o that_o do_v believe_v so_o it_o be_v express_o affirm_v towards_o all_o that_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o promise_n rom._n 8._o 9_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n if_o so_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o ver._n 11._o the_o spirit_n of_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o jesus_n from_o the_o dead_a dwell_v in_o you_o the_o holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o we_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 14._o he_o that_o be_v in_o we_o be_v great_a than_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n 1_o john_n 4._o 4._o and_o many_o other_o express_a testimony_n there_o be_v unto_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o whereas_o the_o subject_a of_o these_o promise_n and_o proposition_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o so_o express_v as_o not_o to_o leave_v any_o pretence_n for_o any_o thing_n else_o and_o not_o his_o person_n to_o be_v intend_v and_o whereas_o nothing_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o that_o be_v unreasonable_a inconvenient_a unto_o he_o in_o the_o discharge_v of_o his_o office_n or_o inconsistent_a with_o any_o of_o his_o divine_a perfection_n but_o rather_o what_o be_v every_o way_n suitable_a unto_o his_o work_n and_o evident_o demonstrative_a of_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o subsistence_n it_o be_v both_o irrational_a and_o unsuitable_a unto_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o divine_a
defection_n from_o it_o in_o season_n of_o temptation_n and_o persecution_n 3._o it_o so_o teach_v as_o to_o give_v withal_o a_o approbation_n of_o and_o love_n unto_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v teach_v these_o be_v the_o next_o principle_n and_o cause_n of_o practice_n or_o the_o do_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o know_v which_o be_v the_o only_a cement_n of_o all_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o security_n render_v they_o firm_a and_o stable_a the_o mind_n may_v discern_v spiritual_a truth_n but_o if_o the_o will_n and_o affection_n be_v not_o wrought_v over_o to_o love_v they_o and_o delight_v in_o they_o we_o shall_v never_o conform_v ourselves_o unto_o they_o in_o the_o diligent_a exercise_n and_o practice_n of_o what_o they_o do_v require_v and_o what_o we_o may_v do_v on_o the_o solitary_a efficacy_n of_o light_n and_o conviction_n without_o the_o adherence_n of_o love_n and_o delight_n will_v neither_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n nor_o shall_v we_o be_v permanent_a and_o stable_a therein_o all_o other_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n without_o the_o love_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o truth_n will_v be_v insufficient_a unto_o our_o preservation_n in_o the_o save_v profession_n of_o it_o and_o this_o be_v the_o characteristical_a note_n of_o the_o teach_n by_o this_o unction_n it_o give_v and_o communicate_v with_o it_o the_o love_n of_o that_o truth_n wherein_o we_o be_v instruct_v and_o delight_n in_o obedience_n unto_o what_o it_o do_v require_v where_o these_o be_v not_o however_o raise_v our_o mind_n may_v be_v or_o our_o understanding_n enlarge_v in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o objective_a truth_n whatever_o sublime_a notion_n or_o subtle_a conception_n about_o they_o we_o may_v have_v though_o we_o can_v master_v and_o manage_v all_o the_o speculation_n and_o nicety_n of_o the_o school_n in_o their_o most_o pretend_a accuracy_n of_o expression_n yet_o as_o to_o the_o power_n and_o benefit_n of_o religion_n we_o shall_v be_v but_o as_o sound_a brass_n and_o tinkle_a symbal_n but_o when_o this_o holy_a spirit_n do_v in_o and_o by_o his_o teach_v breathe_v into_o our_o heart_n a_o holy_a divine_a love_n unto_o and_o complacency_n in_o the_o thing_n we_o be_v teach_v when_o he_o enable_v we_o to_o taste_v how_o gracious_a the_o lord_n be_v in_o they_o render_v they_o sweet_a unto_o we_o than_o the_o honey_n or_o the_o honeycomb_n when_o he_o make_v they_o our_o delight_n and_o joy_n exciting_a and_o quicken_a the_o practical_a principle_n of_o our_o mind_n unto_o a_o compliance_n with_o they_o in_o holy_a obedience_n then_o have_v we_o that_o unction_n from_o the_o holy_a one_o which_o will_v both_o sanctify_v and_o secure_v our_o soul_n unto_o the_o end_n and_o hereby_o may_v we_o know_v whether_o we_o have_v ourselves_o receive_v of_o this_o anoint_v some_o will_v fain_o put_v it_o off_o unto_o what_o be_v peculiar_a unto_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o will_v suppose_v another_o kind_n of_o believer_n in_o those_o day_n than_o any_o be_v now_o in_o the_o world_n or_o need_v to_o be_v though_o what_o our_o saviour_n pray_v for_o they_o even_o for_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o consolation_n he_o pray_v also_o for_o all_o they_o who_o shall_v believe_v on_o he_o through_o their_o word_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o take_v away_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o privilege_n thereon_o depend_v from_o christian_n and_o in_o truth_n they_o cease_v so_o to_o be_v some_o neglect_v it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o empty_a expression_n and_o either_o whole_o insignificant_a or_o at_o best_a intend_v somewhat_o wherein_o they_o need_v not_o much_o concern_v themselves_o and_o whatever_o it_o be_v they_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o secure_v the_o pretend_a end_n of_o it_o in_o their_o preservation_n from_o seduction_n by_o their_o own_o skill_n and_o resolution_n on_o such_o pretence_n be_v all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o many_o despise_a and_o a_o religion_n be_v form_v wherein_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n have_v no_o concernment_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v otherwise_o state_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ._n they_o know_v and_o own_o of_o how_o great_a importance_n it_o be_v to_o have_v a_o share_n in_o this_o unction_n how_o much_o their_o conformity_n unto_o christ_n their_o participation_n of_o he_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o their_o union_n with_o he_o how_o much_o their_o stability_n in_o profession_n their_o joy_n in_o believe_v their_o love_n and_o delight_n in_o obedience_n with_o their_o dignity_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o all_o his_o holy_a angel_n do_v depend_v thereon_o neither_o do_v we_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n obscure_a or_o unintelligible_a that_o which_o no_o man_n can_v know_v whether_o he_o have_v or_o no._n for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o a_o thing_n so_o thin_a aerial_a and_o imperceptible_a as_o that_o no_o spiritual_a sense_n or_o experience_n can_v be_v have_v of_o it_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v refer_v all_o sort_n and_o degree_n of_o believer_n father_n young_a man_n and_o little_a child_n unto_o it_o for_o their_o relief_n and_o encouragement_n in_o the_o time_n of_o danger_n wherefore_o it_o evidence_v itself_o in_o the_o way_n and_o manner_n of_o its_o act_n operation_n and_o teach_v before_o declare_v and_o as_o by_o those_o instance_n they_o satisfy_v themselves_o as_o unto_o what_o experience_n they_o have_v of_o it_o so_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o pray_v continual_o for_o its_o increase_n and_o further_a manifestation_n of_o its_o power_n in_o they_o yea_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o labour_v that_o their_o prayer_n for_o it_o may_v be_v both_o fervent_a and_o effectual_a for_o the_o more_o express_a and_o eminent_a the_o teach_n of_o this_o anoint_v in_o they_o be_v the_o more_o fresh_a and_o plentiful_a be_v their_o unction_n the_o more_o will_v their_o holiness_n and_o consolation_n abound_v and_o whereas_o this_o be_v that_o by_o which_o as_o it_o immediate_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n they_o have_v their_o peculiar_a dedication_n unto_o god_n be_v make_v king_n and_o priest_n unto_o he_o they_o be_v high_o concern_v to_o secure_v their_o interest_n therein_o for_o it_o may_v be_v they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v exalt_v promote_v and_o dignify_v in_o the_o world_n by_o their_o profession_n as_o that_o they_o be_v make_v thereby_o the_o scorn_n of_o man_n and_o the_o outcast_n of_o the_o people_n those_o indeed_o who_o kingdom_n and_o priesthood_n their_o dignity_n and_o honour_n in_o christianity_n their_o approximation_n unto_o god_n and_o christ_n in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n consist_v in_o secular_a title_n honour_n power_n and_o grandeur_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o papacy_n may_v content_v themselves_o with_o their_o chrism_n or_o greasy_a unction_n of_o their_o outward_a ceremonious_a consecration_n without_o much_o enquiry_n after_o or_o concern_v in_o this_o spiritual_a anoint_v but_o those_o who_o get_v little_a or_o nothing_o in_o this_o world_n that_o be_v of_o the_o world_n by_o their_o profession_n but_o labour_n pain_n travail_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n with_o scorn_n reproach_n and_o persecution_n have_v need_n look_v after_o that_o which_o give_v they_o a_o dignity_n and_o honour_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o which_o bring_v in_o satisfaction_n and_o peace_n unto_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o that_o anoint_v alone_o whereby_o they_o be_v make_v king_n and_o priest_n unto_o god_n have_v honour_n before_o he_o and_o a_o free_a sacred_a access_n unto_o he_o i_o shall_v only_o add_v that_o whereas_o we_o ascribe_v this_o anoint_v in_o a_o pecnliar_a manner_n unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o comforter_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v easy_o discern_v wherein_o the_o consolation_n which_o we_o receive_v by_o it_o do_v consist_v for_o who_o can_v express_v that_o satisfaction_n refreshment_n and_o joy_n which_o the_o mind_n be_v possess_v with_o in_o those_o spiritual_a effectual_a teach_n which_o give_v it_o a_o clear_a apprehension_n of_o save_v truth_n in_o its_o own_o nature_n and_o beauty_n and_o enlarge_v the_o heart_n with_o love_n unto_o it_o and_o delight_n in_o it_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o believer_n be_v ofttimes_o either_o at_o such_o a_o loss_n as_o unto_o a_o clear_a apprehension_n of_o their_o own_o spiritual_a state_n or_o so_o unskilled_a in_o make_v a_o right_a judgement_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o mean_n of_o divine_a consolation_n or_o so_o confuse_v in_o their_o own_o experience_n or_o so_o negligent_a in_o their_o inquiry_n into_o these_o thing_n or_o be_v so_o disorder_v by_o temptation_n as_o that_o they_o receive_v not_o a_o refresh_a sense_n of_o those_o comfort_n and_o joy_n which_o be_v real_o inseparable_a from_o this_o anoint_v but_o still_o it_o
two_o discourse_n concern_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o his_o work_n the_o one_o of_o the_o spirit_n as_o a_o comforter_n the_o other_o as_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n in_o the_o former_a discourse_n these_o particular_n be_v distinct_o handle_v chap._n i._n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o comforter_n and_o advocate_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n ii_o general_n adjunct_n or_o property_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o comforter_n chap._n iii_o unto_o who_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v a_o comforter_n chap._n iu._n of_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n chap._n v._o act_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o a_o comforter_n how_o he_o be_v a_o unction_n chap._n vi_o the_o spirit_n a_o seal_n and_o how_o chap._n vii_o the_o spirit_n a_o earnest_n and_o how_o by_o the_o late_a reverend_a john_n owen_n d._n d._n london_n print_v for_o william_n marshal_n at_o the_o bible_n in_o newgate-street_n where_o you_o may_v be_v supply_v with_o most_o of_o dr._n owen_n work_n 1693._o the_o preface_n that_o there_o be_v sundry_a great_a and_o eminent_a promise_n refer_v to_o new_a testament_n time_n concern_v the_o pour_v out_o of_o the_o spirit_n none_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o scripture_n and_o believe_v they_o can_v doubt_v by_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o a_o church_n have_v be_v beget_v and_o maintain_v in_o the_o world_n through_o all_o age_n since_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n sometime_o with_o great_a light_n and_o spiritual_a lustre_n and_o sometime_o with_o less_o it_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n that_o it_o have_v be_v accompany_v with_o a_o very_a conspicuous_a and_o remarkable_a effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o indeed_o thereby_o there_o have_v from_o heaven_n a_o seal_n be_v set_v and_o a_o witness_v bear_v unto_o that_o great_a work_n of_o god_n in_o this_o unvaluable_a blessing_n we_o in_o this_o nation_n have_v have_v a_o rich_a and_o plentiful_a share_n insomuch_o as_o it_o seem_v satan_n and_o his_o minister_n have_v be_v torment_v and_o exasperate_v thereby_o and_o thènce_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o there_o have_v some_o rise_v up_o among_o we_o who_o have_v manifest_v themselves_o to_o be_v not_o only_a despiser_n in_o heart_n but_o virulent_a reproacher_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n god_n who_o know_v how_o to_o bring_v good_a out_o of_o evil_a do_v for_o holy_a and_o bless_a end_n of_o his_o own_o suffer_v those_o horrid_a blasphemy_n to_o be_v petulant_o ventod_a on_o this_o occasion_n it_o be_v that_o this_o great_a and_o learned_a and_o holy_a person_n the_o author_n of_o these_o discourse_n take_v up_o thought_n of_o writing_n concern_v the_o bless_a spirit_n and_o his_o whole_a oeconomy_n as_o i_o understand_v from_o himself_o sundry_a year_n ago_o discourse_v with_o he_o concern_v some_o book_n then_o new_o publish_v full_a of_o contumely_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o his_o operation_n for_o as_o it_o be_v with_o paul_n at_o athens_n when_o he_o see_v the_o city_n whole_o give_v to_o idolaty_n so_o be_v doctor_n owen_n spirit_n stir_v in_o he_o when_o he_o read_v the_o scoff_v and_o blasphemy_n cast_v upon_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o his_o grace_n and_o gift_n and_o aid_n in_o some_o late_a writer_n have_v not_o pelagius_n vent_v his_o corrupt_a opinion_n concern_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v like_o the_o church_n have_v never_o have_v the_o learned_a and_o excellent_a write_n of_o augustine_n in_o defence_n thereof_o it_o appear_v from_o bradwardin_n that_o the_o revival_n of_o pelagianism_n in_o his_o day_n stir_v up_o his_o zealous_a and_o pious_a spirit_n to_o wrise_v that_o profound_a and_o elaborate_v book_n of_o he_o de_fw-fr causa_fw-la dei_fw-la arminius_n and_o the_o jesuit_n endeavour_v to_o plant_v the_o same_o weed_n again_o produce_v the_o scholastic_a write_n of_o twiss_n and_o ames_n not_o to_o mention_v foreign_a divine_n for_o which_o we_o in_o this_o generation_n have_v abundant_a cause_n of_o enlarge_v thankfulness_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o light_n the_o occasion_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lay_v hold_v on_o to_o carry_v forth_o paul_n to_o write_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n wherein_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n be_v so_o full_o clear_v be_v the_o bring_n in_o among_o they_o of_o another_o gospel_n by_o corrupt_a teacher_n after_o which_o many_o in_o those_o church_n be_v soon_o draw_v away_o the_o obstinate_a adherence_n of_o many_o among_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o moysaicall_a rite_n and_o observance_n and_o the_o inclination_n of_o other_o to_o apostatise_v from_o the_o new_a testament_n worship_n and_o ordinance_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o occasion_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o light_n which_o shine_v and_o be_v hold_v out_o in_o those_o epistle_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v ill_o have_v want_v the_o like_a way_n and_o work_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v and_o adore_v in_o stir_v up_o this_o learned_a and_o excellent_a person_n to_o communicate_v and_o leave_v unto_o the_o world_n that_o light_n touch_v the_o spirit_n and_o his_o operation_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v by_o that_o spirit_n from_o the_o sacred_a oracle_n of_o truth_n the_o scripture_n to_o what_o advantage_n and_o increase_v of_o light_n it_o be_v perform_v be_v not_o for_o so_o incompetent_a a_o pen_n to_o say_v as_o write_v this_o nevertheless_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o discern_a reader_n will_v observe_v such_o excellency_n shine_v out_o in_o this_o and_o other_o of_o this_o great_a author_n write_n as_o do_v great_o commend_v they_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o will_v do_v so_o in_o after_o age_n however_o this_o corrupt_a and_o degenerate_a generation_n entertain_v they_o they_o be_v not_o the_o crude_a and_o hasty_a and_o untimely_a abortion_n of_o a_o self-full_a distemper_a spirit_n much_o less_o the_o boiling_n over_o of_o inward_a corruption_n and_o rottenness_n put_v into_o a_o fermentation_n but_o the_o mature_a sedate_n and_o seasonable_a issue_n of_o a_o rich_a magazine_n of_o learning_n well_o digest_v with_o great_a exactness_n of_o judgement_n there_o be_v in_o they_o a_o great_a light_n cast_v and_o reflect_v on_o as_o well_o as_o derive_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n those_o inexhaustible_a mine_n of_o light_n in_o sacred_a thing_n they_o be_v not_o fill_v with_o vain_a impertinent_a jangle_n nor_o with_o a_o noise_n of_o multiply_a futilous_a distinction_n nor_o with_o novel_a and_o uncouth_a term_n foreign_a to_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o some_o writer_n be_v add_v nauseam_fw-la usque_fw-la but_o there_o be_v in_o they_o a_o happy_a and_o rare_a conjunction_n of_o firm_a solidity_n enlighten_v clearness_n and_o heart-searching_a spiritualness_n evidence_v themselves_o all_o along_o and_o thereby_o approve_v and_o commend_v his_o write_n to_o the_o judgement_n conscience_n spiritual_a taste_n and_o experience_n of_o all_o those_o who_o have_v any_o acquaintance_n with_o and_o relish_v of_o the_o gospel_n on_o these_o and_o such_o like_a account_n the_o write_n of_o this_o great_a and_o learned_a man_n as_o also_o his_o ordinary_a sermon_n if_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v publish_v as_o possible_o some_o of_o they_o may_v will_v be_v while_o the_o world_n stand_v a_o upbraid_v and_o condemn_v of_o this_o generation_n who_o vitiate_a and_o ill-affected_a eye_n can_v not_o bear_v so_o great_a a_o light_n set_v up_o and_o shine_v on_o a_o candlestick_n and_o which_o do_v therefore_o endeavour_v to_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n these_o two_o discourse_n with_o those_o former_o publish_v make_v up_o all_o that_o dr._n owen_n perfect_v or_o design_v on_o this_o subject_a of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o reader_n may_v perceive_v in_o the_o account_n which_o himself_o have_v give_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o some_o of_o the_o former_a piece_n publish_v by_o himself_o in_o his_o life-time_n not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o other_o lucubration_n of_o his_o on_o subject_n near_o ally_v unto_o these_o which_o possible_o may_v be_v publish_v hereafter_o viz._n one_o entitle_v the_o evidence_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n elect_n and_o perhaps_o some_o other_o what_o further_o he_o may_v have_v have_v in_o his_o thought_n to_o do_v be_v know_v to_o he_o who_o he_o serve_v so_o industrious_o and_o so_o faithful_o in_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o gospel_n while_o he_o be_v here_o on_o earth_n and_o with_o who_o he_o now_o enjoy_v the_o reward_n of_o all_o his_o labour_n and_o all_o his_o suffering_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v concern_v dr._n owen_n that_o as_o god_n give_v he_o very_o transcendent_a ability_n so_o he_o do_v therewithal_o give_v he_o a_o boundless_a enlargedness_n of_o heart_n and_o unsatiable_a desire_n to_o do_v service_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n insomuch_o
as_o he_o be_v thereby_o carry_v on_o through_o great_a bodily_a weakness_n languish_v and_o pain_n beside_o manifold_a other_o trial_n and_o discouragement_n to_o bring_v forth_o out_o of_o his_o treasury_n like_o a_o scribe_n well_o instruct_v unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n many_o useful_a and_o excellent_a fruit_n of_o his_o study_n much_o beyond_o the_o expectation_n and_o hope_n of_o those_o who_o see_v how_o often_o and_o how_o long_o he_o be_v near_o unto_o the_o grave_a but_o while_o he_o be_v thus_o indefatigable_o and_o restles_o lay_v out_o for_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o and_o succeed_a generation_n those_o rich_a talent_n with_o which_o he_o be_v furnish_v his_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o well_o do_v thou_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n enter_z thou_o into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n no_o man_n ever_o yet_o but_o jesus_n christ_n be_v able_a to_o finish_v all_o that_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o do_v for_o god_n on_o the_o removal_n of_o such_o accomplish_a and_o useful_a person_n i_o have_v sometime_o relieve_v myself_o with_o this_o thought_n that_o christ_n live_v in_o heaven_n still_o and_o the_o bless_a spirit_n from_o who_o the_o head_n and_o heart_n of_o this_o choose_a vessel_n be_v so_o rich_o replemsh_v live_v still_o nath._n mather_n october_n 27._o 1692._o errata_fw-la page_n 3._o line_n 19_o for_o concera_fw-mi read_v content_a p._n 7._o l._n 23._o deal_n comma_n after_o external_a and_o put_v it_o after_o subsistence_n p._n 11._o l._n 7._o f._n above_o r._n about_o l._n 18._o f._n comprise_v r._n confine_v p._n 12._o l._n 19_o r._n this_o be_v he_o p._n 14._o l._n 2._o r._n that_o he_o shall_v p._n 15._o l._n 11._o r._n act_v they_o l._n 3._o a_o fine_a f._n expect_v r._n expect_v p._n 23._o l._n ult_n f._n and_o r._n end_n p._n 32._o l._n 19_o f._n discovery_n r._n recovery_n p._n 35._o l._n 13._o f._n wherein_o r._n when_o p._n 37._o l._n 21._o f._n thing_n r._n thought_n l._n ult_n f._n be_v r._n living_n p._n 38._o l._n 25._o f._n direction_n r._n direct_v we_o p._n 39_o l._n 13._o à_fw-la sine_fw-la f._n declare_v r._n declare_v p._n 40._o l._n 7_o 8_o 10_o 13._o deal_n the_o interragatory_n point_n p._n 42._o l._n 15._o f._n this_o r._n his_o p._n 43._o l._n 24._o f._n instance_n r._n instaence_n p._n 55._o l._n 4._o à_fw-la sine_fw-la f._n heb._n 11._o 13._o r._n luke_n 11._o 13._o p._n 83._o l._n 14._o f._n he_o have_v r._n they_o have_v p._n 86._o l._n 7._o f._n in_o r._n be_v p._n 89._o l._n 6._o deal_n comma_n after_o spirit_n p._n 90._o l._n 18._o f._n and_o there_o be_v r._n and_o that_o there_o be_v l._n ult_n f._n this_o holy_a spirit_n r._n his_o holy_a spirit_n p._n 91._o l._n 17._o r._n arrhabone_n r._n posuit_fw-la l._n 18._o r._n arrhabo_fw-la l._n 21._o f._n quam_fw-la r._n quum_fw-la f._n tuerit_fw-la r._n fuerit_fw-la l._n 22._o f._n redditur_fw-la r._n reddatur_fw-la p._n 92._o l._n 10._o f._n arrabon_n r._n arrhabon_n l._n 12._o r._n obinius_n penult_n f._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 98._o l._n 5._o f._n nature_n r._n name_n l._n 14._o f._n long_o r._n long_a p._n 99_o l._n 15._o after_o call_v deal_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o and_o after_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d add_v and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 105._o l._n 5._o f._n signification_n r._n signification_n p._n 120._o l._n 14._o f._n they_o r._n there_o chap._n i._n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o comforter_n of_o the_o church_n by_o way_n of_o office_n how_o he_o be_v the_o church_n advocate_n joh._n 14._o 16._o 1_o joh._n 2._o 1_o 2._o joh._n 16._o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o open_v that_o which_o remain_v to_o complete_a our_o discourse_n concern_v the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o office_n and_o work_n that_o he_o have_v undertake_v for_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o three_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v with_o respect_n unto_o this_o head_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o comforter_n of_o the_o church_n by_o way_n of_o especial_a office_n 2._o what_o be_v in_o that_o office_n or_o wherein_o the_o discharge_v of_o it_o do_v consist_v 3._o what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o towards_o believer_n it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v some_o impropriety_n in_o that_o expression_n by_o the_o way_n of_o office_n a_o office_n be_v not_o simple_o nor_o it_o may_v be_v proper_o speak_v of_o a_o divine_a person_n who_o be_v absolute_o so_o and_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o like_a impropriety_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o most_o of_o the_o expression_n which_o we_o use_v concern_v god_n for_o who_o can_v speak_v of_o he_o aright_o or_o as_o he_o ought_v only_o we_o have_v a_o safe_a rule_n whereby_o to_o express_v our_o conception_n even_o what_o he_o speak_v of_o himself_o and_o he_o have_v teach_v we_o to_o learn_v the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n towards_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n by_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o a_o office_n among_o men._n four_o thing_n be_v require_v unto_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o office_n 1_o a_o especial_a trust._n 2_o a_o especial_a mission_n or_o commission_n 3_o a_o especial_a name_n 4_o a_o especial_a work_n all_o these_o be_v require_v unto_o a_o office_n proper_o so_o call_v and_o where_o they_o be_v comply_v withal_o by_o a_o voluntary_a susception_n in_o the_o person_n design_v thereunto_o a_o office_n be_v complete_o constitute_v and_o we_o must_v inquire_v how_o these_o thing_n in_o a_o divine_a manner_n do_v concur_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o he_o be_v the_o comforter_n of_o the_o church_n first_o he_o be_v entrust_v with_o this_o work_n and_o of_o his_o own_o will_n have_v take_v it_o on_o himself_o for_o when_o our_o saviour_n be_v leave_v of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v a_o full_a prospect_n of_o all_o the_o evil_n trouble_n dejection_n and_o disconsolation_n which_o will_v befall_v his_o disciple_n and_o know_v full_a well_o that_o if_o they_o be_v leave_v unto_o themselves_o they_o will_v faint_v and_o perish_v under_o they_o he_o gives_z they_o assurance_n that_o the_o work_n of_o their_o consolation_n and_o supportment_n be_v leave_v entrust_v and_o commit_v unto_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o that_o he_o will_v both_o take_v care_n about_o it_o and_o perfect_v it_o according_o the_o lord_n christ_n when_o he_o leave_v this_o world_n be_v very_o far_o from_o lay_v aside_o his_o love_n unto_o and_o care_n of_o his_o disciple_n he_o have_v give_v we_o the_o high_a assurance_n that_o he_o continue_v for_o ever_o the_o same_o care_n the_o same_o love_n and_o grace_n towards_o we_o he_o have_v and_o exercise_v when_o he_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o we_o see_v heb._n 4._o 14_o 15_o 16._o cap._n 7._o 27._o but_o inas_fw-la much_o as_o there_o be_v a_o double_a work_n yet_o to_o be_v perform_v in_o our_o behalf_n one_o towards_o god_n and_o the_o other_o in_o ourselves_o he_o have_v take_v a_o twofold_a way_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o that_o towards_o god_n he_o be_v to_o discharge_v immediate_o himself_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n for_o other_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o this_o he_o do_v by_o his_o intercession_n hence_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n that_o as_o to_o his_o humane_a nature_n the_o heaven_n shall_v receive_v he_o unto_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o act_n 3._o 21._o there_o be_v so_o both_o with_o respect_n unto_o himself_o and_o we_o three_o thing_n with_o respect_n unto_o himself_o make_v the_o exaltation_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n in_o heaven_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o 1._o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o pledge_n and_o token_n of_o god_n acceptation_n of_o he_o and_o approbation_n of_o what_o he_o have_v do_v in_o the_o world_n joh._n 16._o 7_o 8._o for_o what_o can_v more_o declare_v or_o evidence_n the_o concern_v and_o delight_n of_o god_n in_o what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o suffer_v than_o after_o he_o have_v be_v so_o ignominious_o treat_v in_o the_o world_n to_o receive_v he_o visible_o glorious_o and_o triumphant_o into_o heaven_n he_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n see_v of_o angel_n and_o in_o the_o issue_n receive_v up_o into_o glory_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 16._o herein_o god_n set_v the_o great_a seal_n of_o heaven_n unto_o his_o work_n of_o mediation_n and_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n which_o ensue_v thereon_o and_o a_o testimony_n hereunto_o be_v that_o which_o fill_v his_o enemy_n with_o rage_n and_o madness_n act._n 7._o 55_o 56_o 57_o his_o resurrection_n confirm_v his_o doctrine_n
ever_o the_o moment_n of_o this_o promise_n lie_v in_o his_o unchangeable_a continuance_n with_o the_o church_n there_o be_v indeed_o a_o present_a occasion_n render_v necessary_a this_o declaration_n of_o the_o unchangeableness_n of_o his_o abide_v for_o in_o all_o this_o discourse_n our_o saviour_n be_v prepare_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o disciple_n for_o his_o departure_n from_o they_o which_o be_v now_o at_o hand_n and_o whereas_o he_o lay_v the_o whole_a of_o the_o relief_n which_o in_o that_o case_n he_o will_v afford_v unto_o they_o upon_o his_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o take_v care_v not_o only_o to_o prevent_v a_o objection_n which_o may_v arise_v in_o their_o mind_n about_o this_o dispensation_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o also_o in_o so_o do_v to_o secure_v the_o faith_n and_o consolation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n for_o as_o he_o himself_o who_o have_v be_v their_o immediate_a visible_a comforter_n during_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o his_o ministry_n among_o they_o be_v now_o depart_v from_o they_o and_o that_o so_o as_o that_o the_o heaven_n be_v to_o receive_v he_o until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n they_o may_v be_v apt_a to_o fear_v that_o this_o comforter_n who_o be_v now_o promise_v unto_o they_o may_v continue_v also_o only_o for_o a_o season_n whereby_o they_o shall_v be_v reduce_v unto_o a_o new_a loss_n and_o sorrow_n to_o assure_v their_o mind_n herein_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v they_o know_v that_o this_o other_o comforter_n shall_v not_o only_o always_o continue_v with_o they_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n work_v and_o ministry_n but_o abide_v with_o the_o church_n absolute_o unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v now_o give_v in_o a_o eternal_a and_o unchangeable_a covenant_n isa._n 59_o 21._o and_o he_o can_v no_o more_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n than_o the_o everlasting_a sure_a covenant_n of_o god_n can_v be_v abolish_v but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v by_o such_o as_o real_o inquire_v into_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o after_o their_o accomplishment_n for_o the_o establishment_n of_o their_o faith_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o if_o the_o comforter_n abide_v always_o with_o the_o church_n that_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o believer_n do_v in_o all_o age_n spend_v it_o may_v be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o life_n in_o trouble_n and_o disconsolation_n have_v no_o experience_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o they_o as_o a_o comforter_n but_o this_o objection_n be_v not_o of_o force_n to_o weaken_v our_o faith_n as_o unto_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o promise_n for_o 1._o there_o be_v in_o the_o promise_n itself_o a_o supposition_n of_o trouble_n and_o disconsolation_n thereon_o to_o befall_v the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n for_o with_o respect_n unto_o they_o it_o be_v that_o the_o comforter_n be_v promise_v to_o be_v send_v and_o they_o do_v but_o dream_v who_o fancy_n such_o a_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o world_n as_o wherein_o it_o shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o such_o a_o assurance_n of_o all_o inward_a and_o outward_a satisfaction_n as_o scarce_o to_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o this_o office_n or_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yea_o the_o promise_n of_o this_o abide_n with_o we_o for_o ever_o as_o a_o comforter_n be_v a_o infallible_a prediction_n that_o believer_n in_o all_o age_n shall_v meet_v with_o trouble_n sorrow_n and_o disconsolation_n 2._o the_o accomplishment_n of_o christ_n promise_n do_v not_o depend_v as_o to_o its_o truth_n upon_o our_o experience_n at_o least_o not_o on_o what_o man_n sensible_o feel_v in_o themselves_o under_o their_o distress_n much_o less_o on_o what_o they_o express_v with_o some_o mixture_n of_o unbelief_n so_o we_o observe_v before_o from_o that_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n concern_v the_o church_n isa._n 41._o 27._o that_o her_o way_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o lord_n and_o her_o judgement_n pass_v over_o from_o she_o god_n as_o she_o complain_v also_o the_o lord_n have_v forsake_v i_o and_o my_o lord_n have_v forget_v i_o chap._n 49._o 14._o but_o yet_o in_o both_o place_n god_n convince_v she_o of_o her_o mistake_n and_o that_o indeed_o her_o complaint_n be_v but_o a_o fruit_n of_o unbelief_n and_o so_o it_o be_v usual_a in_o great_a distress_n when_o person_n be_v so_o swallow_v up_o with_o sorrow_n or_o overwhelm_v with_o anguish_n that_o they_o be_v not_o sensible_a of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o their_o consolation_n 3._o he_o be_v a_o comforter_n unto_o all_o believer_n at_o all_o time_n and_o on_o all_o occasion_n wherein_o they_o real_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o spiritual_a consolation_n but_o yet_o if_o we_o intend_v to_o have_v experience_n of_o his_o work_n herein_o to_o have_v the_o advantage_n of_o it_o or_o benefit_n by_o it_o there_o be_v sundry_a thing_n require_v of_o ourselves_o in_o a_o way_n of_o duty_n if_o we_o be_v negligent_a herein_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o we_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n for_o those_o comfort_n which_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o administer_v unless_o we_o understand_v aright_o the_o nature_n of_o spiritual_a consolation_n and_o value_v they_o both_o as_o sufficient_a and_o satisfactory_a we_o be_v not_o like_a to_o enjoy_v they_o at_o least_o not_o to_o be_v make_v sensible_a of_o they_o many_o under_o their_o trouble_n suppose_v there_o be_v no_o comfort_n but_o in_o their_o removal_n and_o know_v not_o of_o any_o relief_n in_o their_o sorrow_n but_o in_o the_o take_n away_o of_o their_o cause_n at_o best_a they_o value_v any_o outward_a relief_n before_o internal_a support_v and_o refreshment_n such_o person_n can_v never_o receive_v the_o consolation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o any_o refresh_a experience_n to_o look_v for_o all_o our_o comfort_n from_o he_o to_o value_v those_o thing_n wherein_o his_o consolation_n do_v consist_v above_o all_o earthly_a enjoyment_n to_o wait_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o use_n of_o all_o mean_n for_o the_o receive_n of_o his_o instance_n of_o love_n and_o grace_n to_o be_v fervent_a in_o prayer_n for_o his_o presence_n with_o we_o and_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o grace_n be_v require_v in_o all_o those_o towards_o who_o he_o discharge_v this_o office_n and_o whilst_o we_o be_v find_v in_o these_o way_n of_o holy_a obedience_n and_o dependence_n we_o shall_v find_v he_o a_o comforter_n and_o that_o for_o ever_o these_o thing_n be_v observable_a in_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o general_a as_o he_o be_v the_o comforter_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o discharge_n thereof_o what_o be_v further_a considerable_a unto_o the_o guidance_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o the_o participation_n of_o consolation_n with_o respect_n hereunto_o will_v be_v evident_a in_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o particular_n that_o belong_v thereunto_o chap._n iii_o unto_o who_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v promise_v and_o give_v as_o a_o comforter_n or_o the_o object_n of_o his_o act_n in_o this_o office_n we_o have_v consider_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n to_o send_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o be_v the_o comforter_n of_o the_o church_n and_o unto_o that_o end_n to_o abide_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o the_o nature_n also_o of_o that_o office_n and_o work_n in_o general_n which_o hereon_o he_o undertake_v and_o discharge_v with_o the_o property_n of_o they_o have_v be_v declare_v our_o next_o enquiry_n be_v unto_o who_o this_o promise_n be_v make_v and_o towards_o who_o it_o be_v infallible_o fulfil_v how_o and_o unto_o what_o end_v in_o what_o order_n as_o unto_o his_o effect_n and_o operation_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v promise_v unto_o any_o person_n and_o receive_v by_o they_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v in_o our_o former_a discourse_n lib._n 4._o chap._n 3._o we_o shall_v therefore_o here_o only_o declare_v in_o particular_a who_o he_o be_v promise_v unto_o and_o receive_v by_o as_o a_o comforter_n and_o this_o be_v to_o all_o and_o only_o unto_o believer_n those_o who_o be_v actual_o so_o all_o his_o operation_n require_v unto_o the_o make_n of_o they_o so_o to_o be_v be_v antecedent_n hereunto_o for_o the_o promise_n of_o he_o unto_o this_o end_n wherever_o it_o be_v record_v be_v make_v direct_o unto_o they_o and_o unto_o they_o it_o be_v confine_v immediate_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o apostle_n but_o it_o be_v not_o give_v unto_o they_o as_o apostle_n but_o as_o believer_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o particular_a respect_n unto_o the_o difficulty_n and_o cause_n of_o disconsolation_n which_o they_o be_v under_o or_o shall_v meet_v withal_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o be_v so_o see_v the_o promise_n unto_o this_o purpose_n express_o john_n 14._o 16_o 17_o 26._o chap._n 15._o 26._o chap._n 16._o 7_o 8._o and_o it_o be_v declare_v
in_o its_o proper_a order_n if_o man_n be_v not_o first_o sanctify_v by_o he_o they_o can_v never_o be_v comfort_v by_o he_o and_o they_o will_v themselves_o prefer_v in_o their_o trouble_n any_o natural_a or_o rational_a relief_n before_o the_o best_a and_o high_a of_o his_o consolation_n for_o however_o they_o may_v be_v propose_v unto_o they_o however_o they_o may_v be_v instruct_v in_o the_o nature_n way_n and_o mean_n of_o they_o yet_o they_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o and_o why_o shall_v they_o value_v that_o which_o be_v not_o they_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v he_o he_o work_v on_o the_o world_n for_o conviction_n joh._n 16._o 8._o and_o on_o the_o elect_a for_o conversion_n joh._n 3._o 8._o but_o none_o can_v receive_v he_o as_o a_o comforter_n but_o believer_n therefore_o be_v this_o whole_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n little_o take_v notice_n of_o by_o the_o most_o and_o despise_v by_o many_o yet_o be_v it_o never_o the_o less_o glorious_a in_o itself_o be_v full_o declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o less_o useful_a to_o the_o church_n be_v testify_v unto_o by_o the_o experience_n of_o they_o that_o true_o believe_v that_o which_o remain_v for_o the_o full_a declaration_n of_o this_o office_n and_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o consideration_n of_o those_o act_n of_o his_o which_o belong_v proper_o thereunto_o and_o of_o those_o privilege_n whereof_o believer_n be_v make_v partaker_n thereby_o and_o whereas_o many_o bless_a mystery_n of_o evangelical_n truth_n be_v contain_v herein_o they_o will_v require_v much_o time_n and_o diligence_n in_o their_o explanation_n but_o as_o to_o the_o most_o of_o they_o according_a unto_o the_o measure_n of_o light_n and_o experience_n which_o i_o have_v attain_v i_o have_v prevent_v myself_o the_o handle_v of_o they_o in_o this_o place_n for_o i_o have_v speak_v already_o unto_o most_o of_o they_o in_o two_o other_o discourse_n the_o one_o concern_v the_o perseverance_n of_o true_a believer_n and_o the_o other_o of_o our_o communion_n with_o god_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o particular_a as_o therefore_o i_o shall_v be_v spare_v in_o the_o repetition_n of_o what_o be_v already_o in_o they_o propose_v unto_o public_a view_n so_o it_o be_v not_o much_o that_o i_o shall_v add_v thereunto_o yet_o what_o be_v necessary_a unto_o our_o present_a design_n must_v not_o be_v whole_o omit_v especial_o see_v i_o find_v that_o further_a light_n and_o evidence_n may_v be_v add_v unto_o our_o former_a endeavour_n in_o this_o kind_n chap._n iv._o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o first_o thing_n promise_v the_o first_o thing_n which_o the_o comforter_n be_v promise_v for_o unto_o believer_n be_v that_o he_o shall_v dwell_v in_o they_o which_o be_v their_o great_a fundamental_a privilege_n and_o whereon_o all_o other_o do_v depend_v this_o therefore_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v inquire_v into_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o believer_n be_v among_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o ought_v as_o to_o the_o nature_n or_o be_v of_o it_o firm_o to_o believe_v but_o as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o can_v full_o conceive_v nor_o can_v this_o be_v the_o least_o impeachment_n of_o its_o truth_n unto_o any_o who_o assent_n unto_o the_o gospel_n wherein_o we_o have_v sundry_a thing_n propose_v as_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o our_o reason_n can_v comprehend_v we_o shall_v therefore_o assert_v no_o more_o in_o this_o matter_n but_o what_o the_o scripture_n direct_o and_o express_o go_v before_o we_o in_o and_o where_o we_o have_v the_o express_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o our_o warrant_n we_o be_v eternal_o safe_a whilst_o we_o affix_v no_o sense_n thereunto_o that_o be_v absolute_o repugnant_a unto_o reason_n or_o contrary_a unto_o more_o plain_a testimony_n in_o other_o place_n wherefore_o to_o make_v plain_a what_o we_o intend_v herein_o the_o ensue_a observation_n must_v be_v premise_v first_o this_o personal_a inhabitation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o believer_n be_v distinct_a and_o different_a from_o his_o essential_a omnipresence_n whereby_o he_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n omnipresence_n be_v essential_a inhabitation_n be_v personal_a omnipresence_n be_v a_o necessary_a property_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o so_o not_o of_o he_o as_o a_o distinct_a person_n in_o the_o trinity_n but_o as_o god_n essential_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o be_v and_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n to_o be_v every_o where_o to_o fill_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v present_a with_o they_o or_o indistant_a from_o they_o always_o equal_o exist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o a_o infinite_a be_v be_v a_o inseparable_a property_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o such_o but_o this_o inhabitation_n be_v personal_a or_o what_o belong_v unto_o he_o distinct_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n beside_o it_o be_v voluntary_a and_o that_o which_o may_v not_o have_v be_v whence_o it_o be_v the_o subject_a of_o a_o free_a promise_n of_o god_n and_o whole_o depend_v on_o a_o free_a act_n of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n himself_o second_o it_o be_v not_o a_o presence_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o metonymical_a denomination_n or_o a_o expression_n of_o the_o cause_n for_o the_o effect_n that_o be_v intend_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o promise_n the_o spirit_n shall_v dwell_v in_o you_o be_v not_o he_o shall_v work_v gracious_o in_o you_o for_o this_o he_o can_v without_o any_o especial_a presence_n be_v essential_o every_o where_o he_o can_v work_v where_o and_o how_o he_o please_v without_o any_o especial_a presence_n but_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n himself_o that_o be_v promise_v and_o his_o presence_n in_o a_o especial_a manner_n and_o a_o especial_a manner_n of_o that_o presence_n he_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o and_o dwell_v in_o you_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o only_a enquiry_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v whether_o the_o holy_a spirit_n himself_o be_v promise_v unto_o believer_n or_o only_o his_o grace_n which_o we_o shall_v immediate_o inquire_v into_o three_o the_o dwell_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o person_n of_o believer_n of_o what_o nature_n soever_o it_o be_v do_v not_o effect_v a_o personal_a union_n between_o they_o that_o which_o we_o call_v a_o personal_a union_n be_v the_o union_n of_o divers_a nature_n in_o the_o same_o person_n and_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o person_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o union_n such_o be_v the_o hypostatical_a union_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v our_o nature_n he_o assume_v and_o not_o the_o person_n of_o any_o and_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v so_o assume_v any_o more_o but_o in_o one_o individual_a instance_n for_o if_o he_o can_v have_v assume_v another_o individual_a be_v of_o our_o nature_n than_o it_o must_v differ_v personal_o from_o that_o which_o he_o do_v assume_v for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o differ_v one_o man_n from_o another_o but_o a_o distinct_a personal_a subsistence_n of_o each_o and_o it_o imply_v the_o high_a contradiction_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n can_v be_v hypostatical_o unite_v unto_o more_o than_o one_o for_o if_o they_o be_v more_o than_o one_o they_o must_v be_v more_o person_n than_o one_o and_o many_o person_n can_v be_v hypostatical_o unite_v for_o that_o be_v to_o be_v one_o person_n and_o no_o more_o there_o may_v be_v a_o manifold_a union_n mystical_a and_o moral_a or_o divers_a of_o many_o person_n but_o a_o personal_a union_n there_o can_v be_v of_o any_o thing_n but_o of_o distinct_a nature_n and_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n can_v not_o assume_v many_o person_n so_o suppose_v that_o humane_a nature_n which_o he_o do_v unite_v to_o himself_o to_o have_v be_v a_o person_n that_o be_v to_o have_v have_v a_o distinct_a subsistence_n of_o its_o own_o antecedent_n unto_o its_o union_n and_o there_o can_v have_v be_v no_o personal_a union_n between_o it_o and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v a_o distinct_a person_n and_o if_o the_o humane_a nature_n have_v be_v so_o too_o there_o will_v have_v be_v two_o person_n still_o and_o so_o no_o personal_a union_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o although_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o person_n in_o itself_o yet_o it_o cease_v so_o to_o be_v upon_o its_o union_n with_o the_o divine_a and_o so_o two_o person_n be_v conjoin_v and_o compound_v into_o one_o for_o if_o ever_o humane_a nature_n have_v in_o any_o instance_n a_o personal_a subsistence_n of_o its_o own_o it_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o it_o without_o the_o destruction_n and_o annihilation_n of_o the_o individual_a for_o to_o suppose_v otherwise_o be_v to_o make_v it_o to_o continue_v what_o it_o be_v and_o not_o what_o it_o be_v for_o it_o be_v what_o it_o be_v distinct_a
grace_n to_o wrest_v these_o expression_n unto_o a_o low_a mean_a figurative_a signification_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o true_a believer_n so_o to_o do_v for_o however_o some_o of_o they_o may_v not_o have_v exercise_v their_o mind_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o abide_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n with_o the_o church_n and_o some_o of_o they_o when_o they_o hear_v of_o his_o personal_a indwel_n wherein_o they_o have_v not_o be_v due_o instruct_v do_v fear_v it_o may_v be_v that_o indeed_o that_o can_v be_v which_o they_o can_v comprehend_v and_o that_o some_o evil_a consequence_n may_v ensue_v upon_o the_o admittance_n of_o it_o although_o they_o can_v say_v what_o they_o be_v yet_o it_o be_v with_o they_o all_o even_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n dwell_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v they_o that_o true_o believe_v and_o herein_o have_v they_o a_o apprehension_n of_o such_o a_o personal_a presence_n of_o he_o as_o they_o can_v conceive_v this_o therefore_o be_v so_o express_o so_o frequent_o affirm_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o church_n which_o depend_v thereon_o be_v singular_a and_o eminent_a it_o be_v unto_o i_o a_o important_a article_n of_o evangelical_n truth_n 3._o although_o all_o the_o principal_a act_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o we_o and_o towards_o we_o as_o a_o comforter_n do_v depend_v on_o this_o head_n or_o flow_v from_o this_o spring_n of_o his_o inhabitation_n yet_o in_o the_o confirmation_n of_o its_o truth_n i_o shall_v here_o name_v one_o or_o two_o by_o which_o itself_o be_v evidence_v and_o its_o benefit_n unto_o the_o church_n declare_v 1_o this_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o his_o gracious_a operation_n in_o we_o so_o our_o saviour_n himself_o declare_v it_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v give_v unto_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o he_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v up_o into_o everlasting_a life_n john_n 4._o 14._o the_o water_n here_o promise_v be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n call_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n ver._n 10._o this_o be_v evident_a from_o that_o parallel_n place_n john_n 7._o 38_o 39_o where_o this_o live_a water_n be_v plain_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o water_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o be_v to_o be_v in_o he_o and_o there_o to_o abide_v which_o be_v but_o a_o metaphorical_a expression_n of_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o he_o as_o a_o well_o as_o a_o live_a fountain_n which_o can_v be_v speak_v of_o any_o gracious_a habit_n whatever_o no_o quality_n in_o our_o mind_n can_v be_v a_o spring_n of_o live_v water_n beside_o all_o gracious_a habit_n be_v effect_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o the_o well_o itself_o but_o belong_v unto_o the_o spring_a of_o it_o up_o in_o live_v water_n so_o be_v the_o spirit_n in_o his_o indwelling_n distinguish_v from_o all_o his_o evangelical_n operation_n of_o grace_n as_o the_o well_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o stream_n that_o flow_v from_o it_o and_o as_o it_o be_v natural_a and_o easy_a for_o a_o spring_n of_o live_v water_n to_o bubble_v up_o and_o put_v forth_o refresh_v stream_n so_o it_o belong_v unto_o the_o consolation_n of_o believer_n to_o know_v how_o easy_a it_o be_v unto_o the_o holy_a spirit_n how_o ready_a he_o be_v on_o the_o account_n of_o his_o gracious_a inhabitation_n to_o carry_v on_o and_o perfect_v the_o work_n of_o grace_n holiness_n and_o sanctification_n in_o they_o and_o what_o instruction_n they_o may_v take_v for_o their_o own_o deportment_n towards_o he_o may_v be_v afterward_o speak_v unto_o so_o in_o many_o other_o place_n be_v his_o presence_n with_o we_o which_o we_o have_v prove_v to_o be_v by_o the_o way_n of_o gracious_a inhabitation_n propose_v as_o the_o cause_n and_o spring_n of_o all_o his_o gracious_a operation_n and_o so_o distinct_a from_o they_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o be_v give_v we_o shed_v abroad_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o our_o heart_n rom._n 5._o 5._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o dwell_v in_o we_o shall_v quicken_v our_o mortal_a body_n rom._n 8._o 12._o he_o bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n rom._n 8._o 16._o which_o place_n have_v be_v elsewhere_o explain_v and_o vindicate_v 2_o this_o be_v the_o hide_a spring_n and_o cause_n of_o that_o inexpressible_a distance_n and_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o believer_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n our_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o life_n of_o believer_n be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n col._n 3._o 3_o a_o bless_a life_n they_o have_v whilst_o they_o be_v here_o dead_a to_o the_o world_n and_o as_o dead_a in_o the_o world_n a_o life_n that_o will_v issue_v in_o eternal_a glory_n but_o no_o such_o thing_n appear_v no_o lustre_n of_o it_o be_v cast_v abroad_o into_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n true_a say_v the_o apostle_n for_o it_o be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n it_o be_v so_o both_o in_o its_o cause_n nature_n operation_n and_o means_n of_o preservation_n but_o by_o this_o hide_a life_n it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v difference_v from_o the_o perish_a world_n and_o it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v as_o i_o suppose_v that_o this_o difference_n be_v real_a and_o great_a for_o those_o who_o believe_v do_v enjoy_v the_o especial_a love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n whereas_o those_o who_o do_v not_o be_v under_o the_o curse_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o they_o they_o be_v alive_a unto_o god_n but_o these_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n and_o if_o man_n will_v not_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v so_o inexpressible_a a_o difference_n between_o they_o in_o this_o world_n they_o will_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v it_o at_o the_o last_o day_n when_o the_o decretory_a sentence_n of_o come_v you_o bless_v and_o go_v you_o curse_v shall_v be_v open_o denounce_v but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n there_o be_v no_o visible_a cause_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n of_o this_o inexpressible_a and_o eternal_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o sort_n of_o person_n for_o beside_o that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o world_n do_v judge_v amiss_o of_o all_o that_o believer_n be_v and_o do_v and_o do_v rather_o through_o a_o inbred_a enmity_n work_v by_o wicked_a and_o foolish_a surmize_n suppose_v they_o to_o be_v the_o worst_a rather_o than_o absolute_o the_o best_a of_o man_n there_o be_v not_o for_o the_o most_o part_n such_o a_o visible_a manifest_a difference_n in_o outward_a action_n and_o duty_n on_o which_o alone_o a_o judgement_n may_v be_v pass_v in_o man_n day_n as_o to_o be_v a_o just_a foundation_n of_o believe_v so_o unspeakable_a difference_n between_o their_o person_n as_o be_v speak_v of_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o their_o work_n which_o indeed_o ought_v to_o be_v far_o great_a than_o it_o be_v and_o so_o a_o great_a testimony_n give_v to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n 1_o john_n 3._o 12._o there_o be_v yet_o a_o great_a difference_n in_o internal_a habitual_a grace_n whereby_o the_o mind_n of_o believer_n be_v transform_v initial_o into_o the_o image_n of_o god_n tit._n 1._o 15._o but_o these_o thing_n will_v not_o bear_v the_o weight_n of_o this_o inconceivable_a distance_n principal_o therefore_o it_o depend_v hereon_o namely_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o two_o house_n that_o solomon_n build_v be_v that_o god_n dwell_v in_o the_o one_o and_o he_o himself_o in_o the_o other_o though_o any_o two_o house_n as_o unto_o their_o outward_a fabric_n make_v the_o same_o appearance_n yet_o if_o the_o king_n dwell_v in_o the_o one_o and_o a_o robber_n in_o the_o other_o the_o one_o may_v be_v a_o palace_n and_o the_o other_o a_o den._n it_o be_v this_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereon_o all_o the_o privilege_n of_o believer_n do_v immediate_o depend_v and_o all_o the_o advantage_n which_o they_o have_v above_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v make_v hereby_o or_o ensue_v hereon_o be_v so_o inconceivable_o great_a as_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n may_v thence_o be_v give_v of_o all_o the_o excellent_a thing_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o they_o who_o be_v partaker_n of_o it_o chap._n v._o particular_a act_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o a_o comforter_n how_o he_o be_v a_o unction_n the_o especial_a act_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n towards_o believer_n as_o their_o comforter_n with_o the_o privilege_n and_o advantage_n which_o by_o they_o they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o have_v be_v several_o speak_v unto_o by_o many_o and_o i_o have_v also_o
the_o lord_n god_n be_v upon_o i_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v i_o his_o unction_n consist_v principal_o in_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o he_o for_o he_o prove_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o he_o because_o he_o be_v anoint_v and_o this_o give_v we_o a_o general_a rule_n that_o the_o anoint_v with_o material_a oil_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v presigure_n and_o represent_v the_o effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n under_o the_o new_a which_o now_o answer_v all_o the_o end_n of_o those_o typical_a institution_n hence_o the_o gospel_n in_o opposition_n unto_o they_o all_o in_o the_o letter_n outward_o visible_o and_o material_o be_v call_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2_o cor._n 3._o 6_o 8._o so_o be_v the_o unction_n of_o christ_n express_v isa._n 11._o 2._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v rest_v upon_o he_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n the_o spirit_n of_o counsel_n and_o may_v the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n 4._o whereas_o the_o unction_n of_o christ_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o full_a communication_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o he_o not_o by_o measure_n in_o all_o his_o grace_n and_o gift_n needful_a unto_o his_o humane_a nature_n or_o his_o work_n though_o it_o be_v essential_o one_o entire_a work_n yet_o be_v it_o carry_v on_o by_o several_a degree_n and_o distinction_n of_o time_n for_o 1_o he_o be_v anoint_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o his_o incarnation_n in_o the_o womb_n luke_n 1._o 35._o the_o nature_n of_o which_o work_n we_o have_v at_o large_a before_o explain_v 2_o he_o be_v so_o at_o his_o baptism_n and_o entrance_n into_o his_o public_a ministry_n when_o he_o be_v anoint_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o isa._n 61._o 1._o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v on_o he_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n matth._n 3._o 17._o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o unction_n more_o peculiar_o respect_v a_o fullness_n of_o the_o grace_n the_o latter_a of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n 3_o he_o be_v peculiar_o anoint_v unto_o his_o death_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o that_o divine_a act_n of_o he_o whereby_o he_o unessayed_v himself_o thereunto_o john_n 17._o 19_o which_o have_v also_o be_v before_o declare_v 4._o he_o be_v at_o his_o ascension_n when_o he_o receive_v of_o the_o father_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n pour_v he_o forth_o on_o his_o disciple_n act_v 2._o 23._o and_o in_o this_o latter_a instance_n he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n which_o include_v his_o glorious_a exaltation_n also_o for_o this_o be_v absolute_o peculiar_a unto_o he_o whence_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o anoint_v above_o his_o fellow_n for_o although_o in_o some_o other_o part_n of_o this_o anoint_v he_o have_v they_o who_o partake_v of_o they_o by_o and_o from_o he_o in_o their_o measure_n yet_o in_o this_o of_o receive_v the_o spirit_n with_o a_o power_n of_o communicate_v he_o unto_o other_o herein_o he_o be_v singular_a nor_o be_v ever_o any_o other_o person_n sharer_n with_o he_o therein_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n see_v the_o exposition_n on_o heb._n 1._o 8_o 9_o now_o although_o there_o be_v a_o inconceivable_a difference_n and_o distance_n between_o the_o unction_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o of_o believer_n yet_o be_v his_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o as_o to_o the_o kind_n thereof_o and_o 5._o believer_n have_v their_o unction_n immediate_o from_o christ._n so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o text_n you_o have_v a_o unction_n from_o the_o holy_a one._n so_o be_v he_o call_v act_v 3._o 14._o rev._n 3._o 7._o these_o thing_n say_v he_o that_o be_v holy_a he_o himself_o be_v anoint_v as_o the_o most_o holy_a dan._n 9_o 24._o and_o it_o be_v his_o spirit_n which_o believer_n do_v receive_v eph._n 3._o 16._o phil._n 1._o 19_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o who_o anoint_v we_o be_v god_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 21._o and_o i_o do_v take_v god_n there_o personal_o for_o the_o father_n as_o the_o same_o name_n be_v in_o the_o verse_n forego_v for_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o he_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n be_v yea_o and_o in_o he_o amen_o wherefore_o the_o father_n be_v the_o original_a supreme_a cause_n of_o our_o anoint_v but_o the_o lord_n christ_n the_o holy_a one_o be_v the_o immediate_a efficient_a cause_n thereof_o this_n himself_o express_v when_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o will_v send_v the_o spirit_n from_o the_o father_n the_o supreme_a donation_n be_v from_o the_o father_n the_o immediate_a collation_n from_o the_o son_n 6._o it_o be_v therefore_o manifest_a that_o the_o anoint_v of_o believer_n consist_v in_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o they_o from_o and_o by_o jesus_n christ._n it_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n that_o do_v anoint_v we_o but_o he_o be_v the_o unction_n wherewith_o we_o be_v anoint_v by_o the_o holy_a one._n this_o the_o analogy_n unto_o the_o unction_n of_o christ_n make_v undeniable_a for_o as_o he_o be_v anoint_v so_o be_v they_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o unction_n though_o in_o a_o degree_n inferior_a unto_o he_o for_o they_o have_v nothing_o but_o a_o measure_n and_o portion_n from_o his_o fullness_n as_o he_o please_v eph._n 4._o 7._o our_o unction_n therefore_o be_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o nothing_o else_o he_o be_v that_o unction_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o and_o abide_v with_o we_o but_o this_o communication_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v general_a and_o respect_n all_o his_o operation_n it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v wherein_o the_o especial_a nature_n of_o it_o do_v consist_v and_o whence_o this_o communication_n of_o he_o be_v thus_o express_v by_o a_o unction_n and_o this_o can_v be_v no_o otherwise_o learn_v but_o from_o the_o effect_n ascribe_v unto_o he_o as_o he_o be_v a_o unction_n and_o the_o relation_n with_o the_o resemblance_n that_o be_v therein_o unto_o the_o unction_n of_o christ._n it_o be_v therefore_o some_o particular_a grace_n and_o privilege_n which_o be_v intend_v in_o this_o unction_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 21._o it_o be_v mention_v only_o neutral_o without_o the_o ascription_n of_o any_o effect_n unto_o it_o so_o that_o therein_o we_o can_v learn_v its_o especial_a nature_n but_o there_o be_v two_o effect_n elsewhere_o ascribe_v unto_o it_o the_o first_o be_v teach_v with_o a_o save_n permanent_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n thereby_o produce_v in_o our_o mind_n this_o be_v full_o express_v 1_o john_n 2._o 20_o 27._o you_o have_v a_o unction_n from_o the_o holy_a one_o aend_v you_o know_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v all_o those_o thing_n of_o the_o fundamental_a essential_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n all_o you_o need_v to_o know_v that_o you_o may_v obey_v god_n true_o and_o be_v save_v infallible_o this_o you_o have_v by_o this_o unction_n for_o this_o anoint_v which_o you_o have_v receive_v abide_v in_o you_o and_o teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o a_o especial_a manner_n with_o respect_n unto_o our_o permanency_n and_o establishment_n in_o the_o truth_n against_o prevalent_a seducer_n and_o seduction_n so_o it_o be_v join_v with_o establish_v in_o that_o other_o place_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 21._o wherefore_o in_o the_o first_o place_n this_o anoint_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o communication_n of_o he_o unto_o we_o with_o respect_n unto_o that_o gracious_a work_n of_o he_o in_o the_o spiritual_a save_v illumination_n of_o our_o mind_n teach_v we_o to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o adhere_v firm_o unto_o it_o in_o love_n and_o obedience_n this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v peculiar_o ascribe_v unto_o it_o and_o we_o have_v no_o way_n to_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o but_o by_o its_o effect_n the_o anoint_v then_o of_o believer_n with_o the_o spirit_n consist_v in_o the_o collation_n of_o he_o upon_o they_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v gracious_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o save_a illumination_n of_o their_o mind_n cause_v their_o soul_n firm_o to_o cleave_v unto_o they_o with_o joy_n and_o delight_n and_o transform_v they_o in_o the_o whole_a inward_a man_n into_o the_o image_n and_o likeness_n of_o it_o hence_o it_o be_v call_v the_o anoint_v of_o our_o eye_n with_o eyesalve_n that_o we_o may_v see_v rev._n 3._o 18._o so_o do_v it_o answer_v that_o unction_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n with_o the_o spirit_n which_o make_v he_o quick_a of_o understanding_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n isa._n 11._o 3._o let_v these_o thing_n therefore_o be_v fix_v in_o the_o first_o place_n namely_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o unction_n which_o believer_n receive_v from_o the_o
as_o to_o god_n himself_o as_o his_o child_n unto_o jesus_n christ_n as_o his_o member_n unto_o all_o saint_n and_o angel_n in_o the_o family_n of_o god_n above_o and_o below_o and_o be_v call_v to_o many_o new_a work_n duty_n and_o use_v which_o before_o they_o know_v nothing_o of_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o a_o new_a world_n erect_v by_o the_o new_a creation_n and_o which_o way_n soever_o they_o look_v or_o turn_v themselves_o they_o say_v old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o behold_v all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a so_o it_o be_v with_o every_o one_o that_o be_v make_v a_o new_a creature_n in_o christ_n jesus_n 2_o cor._n 5._o 17._o in_o this_o state_n and_o condition_n wherein_o a_o man_n have_v new_a principle_n put_v within_o he_o new_a relation_n contract_v about_o he_o new_a duty_n present_v unto_o he_o and_o a_o new_a deportment_n in_o all_o thing_n require_v of_o he_o how_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a to_o behave_v himself_o aright_o and_o answer_v the_o condition_n and_o holy_a station_n wherein_o he_o be_v place_v this_o no_o man_n can_v do_v of_o himself_o for_o who_o be_v sufficient_a for_o these_o thing_n wherefore_o 2._o in_o this_o state_n god_n own_v they_o and_o communicate_v unto_o they_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o fit_v they_o for_o their_o relation_n to_o enable_v they_o unto_o their_o duty_n to_o act_v their_o new_a principle_n and_o every_o way_n to_o discharge_v the_o work_n they_o be_v call_v unto_o even_o as_o their_o head_n the_o lord_n christ_n be_v unto_o he_o god_n do_v not_o now_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n but_o of_o power_n of_o love_n and_o of_o a_o sound_a mind_n 2_o tim._n 1._o 7._o and_o hereby_o do_v god_n seal_v they_o for_o 1._o hereby_o he_o give_v his_o testimony_n unto_o they_o that_o they_o be_v his_o own_v by_o he_o accept_v with_o he_o his_o son_n or_o child_n which_o be_v his_o seal_n for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o so_o he_o will_v never_o have_v give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o they_o and_o herein_o consist_v the_o great_a testimony_n that_o god_n do_v give_v and_o the_o only_a seal_n that_o he_o do_v set_v unto_o any_o in_o this_o world_n that_o this_o be_v god_n testimony_n and_o seal_n the_o apostle_n peter_n prove_v act_v 15._o 8_o 9_o for_o on_o the_o debate_n of_o that_o question_n whether_o god_n approve_a and_o accept_v of_o the_o humble_a believer_n although_o they_o observe_v not_o the_o rite_n of_o moses_n he_o confirm_v that_o he_o do_v with_o this_o argument_n god_n say_v he_o which_o know_v their_o heart_n bear_v they_o witness_n how_o do_v he_o do_v it_o how_o do_v he_o set_v his_o seal_n to_o they_o as_o he_o say_v he_o by_o give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o as_o he_o do_v unto_o we_o hereby_o god_n give_v testimony_n unto_o they_o and_o lest_o any_o shall_v suppose_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o gift_n and_o miraculous_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o so_o as_o that_o this_o seal_v of_o god_n shall_v consist_v therein_o alone_o he_o add_v that_o his_o gracious_a operation_n also_o be_v no_o less_o a_o effect_n of_o this_o witness_n which_o god_n give_v unto_o they_o and_o put_v no_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o they_o purify_n their_o heart_n by_o faith_n this_o therefore_o be_v that_o whereby_o god_n give_v his_o testimony_n unto_o believer_n namely_o when_o he_o seal_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n or_o by_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o they_o and_o this_o he_o do_v in_o two_o respect_n for_o 2._o this_o be_v that_o whereby_o he_o give_v believer_n assurance_n of_o their_o relation_n unto_o he_o of_o their_o interest_n in_o he_o of_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n to_o they_o it_o have_v be_v general_o conceive_v that_o this_o seal_v with_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o which_o give_v assurance_n unto_o believer_n and_o so_o indeed_o it_o do_v although_o the_o way_n whereby_o it_o do_v it_o have_v not_o be_v right_o apprehend_v and_o therefore_o none_o have_v be_v able_a to_o declare_v the_o especial_a nature_n of_o that_o act_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o he_o seal_v we_o whence_o such_o assurance_n shall_v ensue_v but_o it_o be_v indeed_o not_o any_o act_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o that_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o assurance_n but_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o we_o this_o the_o apostle_n plain_o testify_v 1_o john_n 3._o 24._o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o he_o abide_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o that_o god_n abide_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o be_v the_o subject_a matter_n of_o our_o assurance_n this_o we_o know_v say_v the_o apostle_n which_o express_v the_o high_a assurance_n we_o be_v capable_a of_o in_o this_o world_n and_o how_o do_v we_o know_v it_o even_o by_o the_o spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o but_o it_o may_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n may_v be_v that_o the_o spirit_n which_o god_n give_v we_o do_v by_o some_o especial_a work_n of_o he_o effect_v this_o assurance_n in_o we_o and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o his_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o but_o some_o especial_a work_n of_o he_o in_o we_o that_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o assurance_n and_o consequent_o our_o seal_v i_o do_v not_o deny_v such_o a_o especial_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o shall_v be_v afterward_o declare_v but_o i_o judge_v that_o it_o be_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o spirit_n himself_o unto_o we_o that_o be_v here_o intend_a for_o so_o the_o apostle_n declare_v his_o sense_n to_o be_v chap._n 4._o 13._o hereby_o know_v we_o that_o we_o dwell_v in_o god_n and_o he_o in_o we_o because_o he_o have_v give_v we_o of_o his_o spirit_n this_o be_v the_o great_a evidence_n the_o great_a ground_n of_o assurance_n which_o we_o have_v that_o god_n have_v take_v we_o into_o a_o near_a and_o dear_a relation_n unto_o himself_o because_o he_o have_v give_v we_o of_o his_o spirit_n that_o great_a and_o heavenly_a gift_n which_o he_o will_v impart_v unto_o no_o other_o and_o indeed_o on_o this_o one_o hinge_v depend_v the_o whole_a case_n of_o that_o assurance_n which_o believer_n be_v capable_a of_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o we_o be_v he_o but_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o rom._n 8_o 9_o hereon_o alone_o depend_v the_o determination_n of_o our_o especial_a relation_n unto_o god_n by_o this_o therefore_o do_v god_n seal_v believer_n and_o therein_o give_v they_o assurance_n of_o his_o love_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v the_o sole_a rule_n of_o your_o self-examination_n whether_o you_o be_v seal_v of_o god_n or_o no._n 3._o hereby_o god_n evidence_v they_o unto_o the_o world_n which_o be_v another_o end_n of_o seal_v he_o mark_v they_o so_o hereby_o for_o his_o own_o as_o that_o the_o world_n can_v but_o in_o general_n take_v notice_n of_o they_o for_o where_o god_n set_v this_o seal_n in_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o spirit_n it_o will_v so_o operate_v and_o produce_v such_o effect_n as_o shall_v fall_v under_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o do_v in_o the_o lord_n christ_n so_o also_o will_v it_o do_v in_o believer_n according_a unto_o their_o measure_n and_o there_o be_v two_o way_n whereby_o god_n seal_v do_v evidence_n they_o unto_o the_o world_n the_o one_o be_v by_o the_o effectual_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n communicate_v unto_o they_o both_o in_o gift_n and_o grace_n though_o the_o world_n be_v blind_v with_o prejudices_fw-la and_o under_o the_o power_n of_o a_o prevalent_a enmity_n against_o spiritual_a thing_n yet_o it_o can_v but_o discover_v what_o a_o change_n be_v make_v in_o the_o most_o of_o those_o who_o god_n thus_o seal_v and_o how_o by_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o they_o hate_v they_o be_v difference_v from_o other_o men._n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o keep_v up_o the_o difference_n and_o enmity_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n between_o the_o seed_n for_o god_n seal_v of_o believer_n with_o his_o spirit_n evidence_v his_o especial_a acceptance_n of_o they_o which_o fill_v the_o heart_n of_o they_o who_o be_v act_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o cain_n with_o hatred_n and_o revenge_n hence_o many_o think_v that_o the_o respect_n which_o god_n have_v unto_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o abel_n be_v testify_v by_o some_o visible_a sign_n which_o cain_n also_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o and_o there_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o kindle_v of_o his_o sacrifice_n by_o fire_n from_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o type_n and_o resemblance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o have_v be_v show_v all_o other_o cause_n of_o difference_n be_v capable_a
a_o sum_n of_o money_n and_o bid_v he_o take_v it_o as_o a_o pledge_n or_o earnest_n of_o what_o he_o will_v yet_o do_v for_o he_o so_o do_v god_n in_o a_o way_n of_o sovereign_a grace_n and_o bounty_n give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o believer_n and_o withal_o let_v they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v with_o a_o design_n to_o give_v they_o yet_o much_o more_o in_o his_o appoint_a season_n and_o here_o be_v he_o say_v to_o be_v a_o earnest_n other_o thing_n that_o be_v observe_v from_o the_o nature_n and_o use_v of_o a_o earnest_a in_o civil_a contract_n and_o bargain_n between_o man_n belong_v not_o hereunto_o though_o many_o thing_n be_v occasional_o speak_v and_o discourse_v from_o they_o of_o good_a use_n unto_o edification_n three_o in_o two_o of_o the_o place_n wherein_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o this_o matter_n the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o earnest_n but_o wherein_o or_o unto_o what_o end_n be_v not_o express_v 2_o cor._n 1._o 22._o chap._n 5._o 5._o the_o three_o place_n affirm_v he_o to_o be_v a_o earnest_a of_o our_o inheritance_n eph._n 1._o 14._o what_o that_o be_v and_o how_o he_o be_v so_o may_v be_v brief_o declare_v and_o 1._o we_o have_v already_o manifest_v that_o all_o our_o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o any_o kind_n be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o we_o do_v receive_v he_o immediate_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ._n for_o to_o as_o many_o as_o receive_v christ_n the_o father_n give_v power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n john_n 1._o 12._o and_o because_o we_o be_v son_n he_o send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o our_o heart_n gal._n 4._o 6._o and_o as_o we_o receive_v the_o spirit_n from_o he_o and_o as_o his_o spirit_n so_o he_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o to_o make_v we_o conformable_a unto_o he_o and_o to_o give_v we_o a_o participation_n of_o his_o gift_n grace_n and_o privilege_n 2._o christ_n himself_o in_o his_o own_o person_n be_v the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n so_o he_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n heb._n 1._o 2._o and_o therefore_o the_o whole_a inheritance_n be_v absolute_o he_o what_o this_o inheritance_n be_v what_o be_v the_o glory_n and_o power_n that_o be_v contain_v therein_o i_o have_v at_o large_a declare_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o that_o place_n 3._o man_n by_o his_o sin_n have_v universal_o forfeit_v his_o whole_a right_n unto_o all_o the_o end_n of_o his_o creation_n both_o on_o the_o earth_n below_o and_o in_o heaven_n above_o death_n and_o hell_n be_v become_v all_o that_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n have_v either_o right_a or_o title_n unto_o but_o yet_o all_o the_o glorious_a thing_n that_o god_n have_v provide_v be_v not_o to_o be_v cast_v away_o a_o heir_n be_v to_o be_v provide_v for_o they_o abraham_n when_o he_o be_v old_a and_o rich_a have_v no_o child_n complain_v that_o his_o steward_n a_o servant_n be_v to_o be_v his_o heir_n gen._n 15._o 3_o 4._o but_o god_n let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o will_v provide_v another_o heir_n for_o he_o of_o his_o own_o seed_n when_o man_n have_v lose_v his_o right_n unto_o the_o whole_a inheritance_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n god_n do_v not_o so_o take_v the_o forfeiture_n as_o to_o seize_v it_o all_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o justice_n and_o destroy_v it_o but_o he_o invest_v the_o whole_a inheritance_n in_o his_o son_n make_v he_o the_o heir_n of_o all_o this_o he_o be_v meet_v for_o as_o be_v god_n eternal_a son_n by_o nature_n and_o hereof_o the_o donation_n be_v free_a gratuitous_a and_o absolute_a and_o this_o grant_n be_v confirm_v unto_o he_o by_o his_o unction_n with_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o 4._o this_o inheritance_n as_o to_o our_o interest_n therein_o lie_v under_o a_o forfeiture_n and_o as_o unto_o we_o it_o must_v be_v redeem_v and_o purchase_v or_o we_o can_v never_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o it_o wherefore_o the_o lord_n christ_n who_o have_v a_o right_n in_o his_o own_o person_n unto_o the_o whole_a inheritance_n by_o the_o free_a grant_n and_o donation_n of_o the_o father_n yet_o be_v to_o redeem_v it_o from_o under_o the_o forfeiture_n and_o purchase_v the_o possession_n of_o it_o for_o we_o thence_o be_v it_o call_v the_o purchase_v possession_n how_o this_o purchase_n be_v make_v what_o make_v it_o necessary_a by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v effect_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ_n the_o price_n which_o he_o pay_v and_o the_o purchase_n that_o he_o make_v thereby_o and_o hereon_o the_o whole_a inheritance_n be_v vest_v in_o the_o lord_n christ_n not_o only_o as_o unto_o his_o own_o person_n and_o his_o right_n unto_o the_o whole_a but_o he_o become_v the_o great_a trustee_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o have_v their_o interest_n in_o this_o inheritance_n commit_v unto_o he_o also_o no_o man_n therefore_o can_v have_v a_o right_n unto_o this_o inheritance_n or_o to_o any_o part_n of_o it_o not_o unto_o the_o least_o share_n of_o god_n creation_n here_o below_o as_o a_o part_n of_o the_o rescue_v or_o purchase_v inheritance_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o union_n with_o he_o wherefore_o four_o the_o way_n whereby_o we_o come_v to_o have_v a_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o thereby_o a_o right_a unto_o the_o inheritance_n be_v by_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n full_o declare_v rom._n 8._o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o for_o it_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n that_o we_o be_v make_v child_n now_o say_v the_o apostle_n if_o we_o be_v child_n than_o heir_n heir_n of_o god_n and_o joint_a heir_n with_o christ._n child_n be_v heir_n unto_o their_o father_n and_o those_o who_o be_v child_n of_o god_n be_v heir_n of_o that_o inheritance_n which_o god_n have_v provide_v for_o his_o child_n heir_n of_o god_n and_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n which_o believer_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o in_o this_o world_n or_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v be_v call_v their_o inheritance_n because_o they_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o free_a gratuitous_a adoption_n they_o be_v not_o thing_n that_o themselves_o have_v purchase_v bargain_v for_o earn_v or_o merit_v but_o a_o inheritance_n depend_v on_o and_o follow_v sole_o upon_o their_o free_a gratuitous_a adoption_n but_o how_o can_v they_o become_v heir_n of_o god_n see_v god_n have_v absolute_o appoint_v the_o son_n alone_o to_o be_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n heb._n 1._o 2._o he_o be_v the_o heir_n unto_o who_o the_o whole_a inheritance_n belong_v why_o say_v the_o apostle_n by_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v make_v joint_a heir_n with_o christ._n the_o whole_a inheritance_n as_o unto_o his_o own_o personal_a right_o be_v entire_o he_o by_o the_o free_a donation_n of_o the_o father_n all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o but_o if_o he_o will_v take_v other_o into_o a_o joint_n right_o with_o he_o he_o must_v purchase_v it_o for_o they_o which_o he_o do_v according_o five_o hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a how_o the_o holy_a spirit_n become_v the_o earnest_a of_o our_o inheritance_n for_o by_o he_o that_o be_v by_o the_o communication_n of_o he_o unto_o we_o we_o be_v make_v joynt-heir_n with_o christ_n which_o give_v we_o our_o right_n and_o title_n whereby_o our_o nature_n be_v as_o it_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o assure_a conveyance_n of_o the_o great_a and_o full_a inheritance_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o give_n of_o his_o spirit_n unto_o we_o god_n make_v of_o we_o coheir_n with_o christ_n we_o have_v the_o great_a and_o most_o assure_a earnest_n and_o pledge_n of_o our_o future_a inheritance_n and_o he_o be_v to_o be_v thus_o a_o earnest_a until_o or_o unto_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o purchase_v possession_n for_o after_o that_o a_o man_n have_v a_o good_a and_o firm_a title_n unto_o a_o inheritance_n settle_v in_o he_o it_o may_v be_v a_o long_a time_n before_o he_o can_v be_v admit_v into_o a_o actual_a possession_n of_o it_o and_o many_o difficulty_n he_o may_v have_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o conflict_n withal_o and_o it_o be_v so_o in_o this_o case_n the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n give_v unto_o we_o whereby_o we_o become_v coheir_n with_o christ_n who_o spirit_n we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o secure_v the_o title_n of_o the_o inheritance_n in_o and_o unto_o our_o whole_a person_n but_o before_o we_o can_v come_v unto_o the_o full_a possession_n of_o it_o not_o only_o have_v we_o many_o spiritual_a trial_n and_o temptation_n to_o conflict_n withal_o in_o our_o soul_n but_o our_o body_n also_o be_v liable_a unto_o death_n
and_o corruption_n wherefore_o whatever_a first-fruit_n we_o may_v enjoy_v yet_o can_v we_o not_o enter_v into_o the_o actual_a possession_n of_o the_o whole_a inheritance_n until_o not_o only_o our_o soul_n be_v deliver_v from_o all_o sin_n and_o temptation_n but_o our_o body_n also_o be_v rescue_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o grave_a this_o be_v the_o full_a redemption_n of_o the_o purchase_v possession_n whence_o it_o be_v signal_o call_v the_o redemption_n of_o the_o body_n rom._n 8._o 23._o thus_o as_o the_o lord_n christ_n himself_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n by_o that_o communication_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o he_o whereby_o he_o be_v anoint_v unto_o his_o office_n so_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n from_o he_o and_o by_o he_o make_v we_o coheir_n with_o he_o and_o so_o he_o be_v a_o earnest_a give_v we_o of_o god_n of_o the_o future_a inheritance_n it_o belong_v not_o unto_o my_o present_a purpose_n to_o declare_v the_o nature_n of_o that_o inheritance_n whereof_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o earnest_a in_o brief_a it_o be_v the_o high_a participation_n with_o christ_n in_o that_o glory_n and_o honour_n that_o our_o nature_n be_v capable_a of_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n we_o be_v say_v to_o receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rom._n 8._o 23._o that_o be_v the_o spirit_n himself_o as_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o our_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a redemption_n god_n have_v appoint_v that_o the_o first_o fruit_n which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o offer_n unto_o himself_o hereunto_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d answer_v and_o be_v take_v general_o for_o that_o which_o be_v first_o in_o any_o kind_n rom._n 16._o 5._o 1_o cor._n 15._o 20._o jam._n 1._o 18._o rev._n 14._o 4._o and_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n must_v be_v either_o what_o he_o first_o work_v in_o we_o or_o all_o his_o fruit_n in_o we_o with_o respect_n unto_o the_o full_a harvest_n that_o be_v to_o come_v or_o the_o spirit_n himself_o as_o the_o beginning_n and_o pledge_n of_o future_a glory_n and_o the_o latter_a of_o these_o be_v intend_v in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o apostle_n discourse_v about_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o whole_a creation_n from_o that_o slate_n of_o bondage_n whereunto_o all_o thing_n be_v subject_v by_o sin_n with_o respect_n hereunto_o he_o say_v that_o believer_n themselves_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o obtain_v a_o full_a deliverance_n as_o he_o have_v express_v it_o chap._n 7._o 24._o do_v groan_n after_o its_o perfect_a accomplishment_n but_o yet_o say_v he_o we_o have_v the_o beginning_n of_o it_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o it_o in_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o we_o for_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v there_o be_v liberty_n 2_o cor._n 3._o 17._o for_o although_o we_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a estate_n of_o the_o liberty_n provide_v for_o the_o child_n of_o god_n whilst_o we_o be_v in_o this_o world_n conflict_v with_o the_o remainder_n of_o sin_n press_v and_o exercise_v with_o temptation_n our_o body_n also_o be_v subject_n unto_o death_n and_o corruption_n yet_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v where_o we_o have_v that_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o our_o redemption_n there_o be_v liberty_n in_o the_o real_a beginning_n of_o it_o and_o assure_a consolation_n because_o it_o shall_v be_v consummate_v in_o the_o appoint_a season_n these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o spiritual_a benefit_n and_o privilege_n which_o believer_n enjoy_v by_o a_o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o promise_a comforter_n of_o the_o church_n these_o thing_n he_o be_v unto_o they_o and_o as_o unto_o all_o other_o thing_n belong_v unto_o their_o consolation_n he_o work_v they_o in_o they_o which_o we_o must_v in_o the_o next_o place_n inquire_v into_o only_o something_o we_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o from_o what_o we_o have_v already_o insist_v on_o as_o 1_o that_o all_o evangelical_n privilege_n whereof_o believer_n be_v make_v partaker_n in_o this_o world_n do_v centre_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n he_o be_v the_o great_a promise_n that_o christ_n have_v make_v unto_o his_o disciple_n the_o great_a legacy_n which_o he_o have_v bequeath_v unto_o they_o the_o grant_v make_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o father_n when_o he_o have_v do_v all_o his_o will_n and_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n and_o exalt_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o holiness_n wisdom_n and_o grace_n be_v this_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o be_v communicate_v by_o he_o unto_o the_o church_n this_o he_o receive_v of_o the_o father_n as_o the_o compliment_n of_o his_o reward_n wherein_o he_o see_v of_o the_o travail_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o be_v satisfy_v this_o spirit_n he_o now_o give_v unto_o believer_n and_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v the_o benefit_n which_o they_o receive_v thereby_o therein_o be_v they_o anoint_v and_o seal_v therein_o do_v they_o receive_v the_o earnest_a and_o first_o fruit_n of_o immortality_n and_o glory_n in_o a_o word_n therein_o be_v they_o take_v into_o a_o participation_n with_o christ_n himself_o in_o all_o his_o honour_n and_o glory_n hereby_o be_v their_o condition_n render_v honourable_a safe_a comfortable_a and_o the_o whole_a inheritance_n be_v unchangeable_o secure_v unto_o they_o in_o this_o one_o privilege_n therefore_o of_o receive_v the_o spirit_n be_v all_o other_o enwrap_v for_o 2_o no_o one_o way_n or_o thing_n or_o similitude_n can_v express_v or_o represent_v the_o greatness_n of_o this_o privilege_n it_o be_v anoint_v it_o be_v seallng_v it_o be_v a_o earnest_a and_o first_o fruit_n every_o thing_n whereby_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o bless_a security_n of_o our_o condition_n may_v be_v express_v or_o intimate_v unto_o we_o for_o what_o great_a pledge_n can_v we_o have_v of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n what_o great_a dignity_n can_v we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o what_o great_a assurance_n of_o a_o future_a bless_a condition_n than_o that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o 3_o hence_o also_o be_v it_o manifest_v how_o abundant_o willing_a he_o be_v that_o the_o heir_n of_o promise_n shall_v receive_v strong_a consolation_n in_o all_o their_o distress_n when_o they_o fly_v for_o refuge_n unto_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v set_v before_o they_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n a_o discourse_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n be_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o which_o these_o particular_n be_v distinct_o handle_v in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n chap._n i._n spiritual_a gift_n their_o name_n and_o signification_n chap._n ii_o difference_n between_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o save_v grace_n chap._n iii_o of_o gift_n and_o office_n extraordinary_n and_o first_o of_o office_n chap._n iu._n of_o extraordinary_a spiritual_a gift_n chap._n v._o of_o the_o original_a duration_n use_v and_o end_v of_o extraordinary_a spiritual_a gift_n chap._n vi_o of_o ordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o grant_v institution_n use_v benefit_n and_o end_n of_o the_o ministry_n chap._n vii_o of_o spiritual_a gift_n enable_v the_o ministry_n to_o the_o exercise_n and_o discharge_v of_o their_o trust_n and_o office_n chap._n viii_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o respect_n unto_o doctrine_n rule_n and_o worship_n how_o attain_v and_o improve_v by_o the_o late_a reverend_a john_n owen_n d._n d._n london_n print_v for_o william_n marshal_n at_o the_o bible_n in_o newgate_n street_n 1693._o of_o spiritual_a gift_n part_n ii_o chap._n i._n spiritual_a gift_n their_o name_n and_o signification_n §_o 1._o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o order_n unto_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o new_a creation_n or_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o his_o communication_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n unto_o the_o member_n of_o it_o according_a as_o their_o place_n and_o station_n therein_o do_v require_v by_o his_o work_n of_o save_v grace_n which_o in_o other_o discourse_n we_o have_v give_v a_o large_a account_n of_o he_o make_v all_o the_o elect_a live_v stone_n and_o by_o his_o communication_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n he_o fashion_n and_o build_v those_o stone_n into_o a_o temple_n for_o the_o live_a god_n to_o dwell_v in_o he_o spiritual_o unite_v they_o into_o one_o mystical_a body_n under_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o a_o head_n of_o influence_n by_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o he_o unite_v they_o into_o a_o organical_a body_n under_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o a_o head_n of_o rule_n by_o gift_n and_o spiritual_a ability_n their_o nature_n be_v make_v one_o and_o the_o same_o by_o grace_n their_o use_n be_v various_a by_o gift_n every_o one_o be_v a_o
and_o endowment_n with_o respect_n unto_o a_o certain_a end_n but_o as_o to_o their_o original_a and_o principal_a cause_n they_o be_v free_a undeserved_a gift_n thence_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o the_o author_n of_o they_o and_o with_o respect_n unto_o they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o gift_n of_o god_n john_n 4._o 10._o and_o the_o effect_v itself_o be_v also_o term_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n act_v 10._o 45._o the_o gift_n of_o god_n act_v 8._o 20._o the_o gift_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n ephes._n 3._o 7._o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n ephes._n 4._o 7._o the_o heavenly_a gift_n heb._n 6._o 4._o all_o express_v the_o freedom_n of_o their_o communication_n on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n on_o the_o same_o account_n be_v they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v gracious_a largess_n gift_n proceed_v from_o mere_a bounty_n and_o therefore_o save_v grace_n be_v also_o express_v by_o the_o same_o name_n in_o general_n because_o they_o also_o be_v free_o and_o undeserved_o communicate_v unto_o we_o rom._n 11._o 28._o but_o these_o gift_n be_v frequent_o and_o almost_o constant_o so_o express_v rom._n 12._o 6._o 1_o cor._n 1._o 7._o chap._n 7._o 7._o chap._n 12._o 4_o 9_o 28_o 30._o 1_o pet._n 4._o 14._o 2_o tim._n 1._o 6._o and_o it_o be_v absolute_a freedom_n in_o the_o bestower_n of_o they_o that_o be_v principal_o intend_v in_o this_o name_n hence_o he_o have_v leave_v his_o name_n as_o a_o curse_n unto_o all_o posterity_n who_o think_v this_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n may_v be_v purchase_v with_o money_n act_v 8._o 20._o a_o pageantry_n of_o which_o crime_n the_o apostate_n age_n of_o the_o church_n erect_v in_o apply_v the_o name_n of_o that_o sin_n to_o the_o purchase_n of_o benefice_n and_o dignity_n whilst_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v equal_o despise_v on_o all_o hand_n and_o indeed_o this_o be_v that_o whereby_o in_o all_o age_n countenance_n be_v give_v unto_o apostasy_n and_o defection_n from_o the_o power_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o name_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v still_o retain_v but_o apply_v to_o outward_a form_n and_o ceremony_n which_o thereby_o be_v substitute_v insensible_o into_o their_o room_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o men._n but_o as_o these_o gift_n be_v not_o any_o of_o they_o to_o be_v buy_v no_o more_o be_v they_o absolute_o to_o be_v attain_v by_o the_o natural_a ability_n and_o industry_n of_o any_o whereby_o a_o image_n of_o they_o be_v attempt_v to_o be_v set_v up_o by_o some_o but_o deform_v and_o useless_a they_o will_v do_v those_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n by_o their_o own_o ability_n which_o can_v never_o be_v acceptable_o discharge_v but_o by_o virtue_n of_o those_o free_a gift_n which_o they_o despise_v whereof_o we_o must_v speak_v more_o afterward_o now_o the_o full_a signification_n of_o these_o word_n in_o our_o sense_n be_v peculiar_a unto_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o although_o in_o other_o author_n they_o be_v use_v for_o a_o gift_n or_o free_n grant_v yet_o they_o never_o denote_v the_o endowment_n or_o ability_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n who_o do_v receive_v they_o which_o be_v their_o principal_a sense_n in_o the_o scripture_n §_o 8._o with_o respect_n unto_o their_o especial_a nature_n they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sometime_o absolute_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o concern_v spiritual_n that_o be_v spiritual_a gift_n and_o so_o again_o chap._n 14._o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d desire_v spiritual_n that_o be_v gift_n for_o so_o it_o be_v explain_v chap._n 12._o 31._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d covet_v earnest_o the_o best_a gift_n whenever_o therefore_o they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d denote_v their_o general_a nature_n be_v to_o be_v supply_v and_o where_o they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o express_v their_o especial_a difference_n from_o all_o other_o they_o be_v neither_o natural_a nor_o moral_a but_o spiritual_a endowment_n for_o both_o their_o author_n nature_n and_o object_n be_v respect_v herein_o their_o author_n be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n their_o nature_n be_v spiritual_a and_o the_o object_n about_o which_o they_o be_v exercise_v be_v spiritual_a thing_n §_o 9_o again_o with_o respect_n unto_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o communication_n they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heb._n 2._o 4._o distribution_n or_o partition_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o subject_a as_o though_o he_o be_v part_v or_o divide_v as_o the_o socinian_o dream_n on_o this_o place_n but_o whereof_o he_o be_v the_o author_n the_o distribution_n which_o he_o make_v and_o they_o be_v thus_o call_v division_n partition_n or_o distribution_n because_o they_o be_v of_o divers_a sort_n and_o kind_n according_a as_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n do_v require_v and_o they_o be_v not_o at_o any_o time_n all_o of_o they_o give_v out_o unto_o any_o one_o person_n at_o least_o so_o as_o that_o other_o shall_v not_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o sort_n from_o the_o same_o inexhaustible_a treasure_n of_o bounty_n grace_n and_o power_n these_o gift_n be_v various_o distribute_v unto_o men._n and_o this_o variety_n as_o the_o apostle_n prove_v give_v both_o ornament_n and_o advantage_n to_o the_o church_n if_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v a_o eye_n where_o be_v the_o hear_v etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 12._o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o 20_o 21_o 22_o 23_o 24_o 25._o it_o be_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o various_a distribution_n of_o gift_n that_o make_v the_o church_n a_o organical_a body_n and_o in_o this_o composure_n with_o the_o peculiar_a uses_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n consist_v the_o harmony_n beauty_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v there_o no_o more_o but_o one_o gift_n or_o gift_n of_o one_o sort_n the_o whole_a body_n will_v be_v but_o one_o member_n as_o where_o there_o be_v none_o there_o be_v no_o animate_v body_n but_o a_o dead_a carcase_n §_o 10._o and_o this_o various_a distribution_n as_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n produce_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 4._o the_o gift_n thus_o distribute_v in_o the_o church_n be_v divers_a as_o to_o their_o sort_n and_o kind_n one_o of_o one_o kind_n another_o of_o another_o a_o account_n hereof_o be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n particular_o ver._n 8_o 9_o 10._o in_o a_o distinct_a enumeration_n of_o the_o sort_n or_o kind_n of_o they_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o general_a end_n of_o they_o all_o but_o divers_a distinct_a different_a gift_n be_v require_v thereunto_o §_o 11._o these_o gift_n be_v bestow_v they_o be_v various_o express_v with_o regard_n unto_o the_o nature_n and_o manner_n of_o those_o operation_n which_o we_o be_v enable_v unto_o by_o virtue_n of_o they_o so_o be_v they_o term_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d minisiration_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 5._o that_o be_v power_n and_o abilitle_n whereby_o some_o be_v enable_v to_o administer_v spiritual_a thing_n unto_o the_o benefit_n advantage_n and_o edification_n of_o other_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ver._n 6._o effectual_a work_n or_o operation_n efficacious_o produce_v the_o effect_n which_o they_o be_v apply_v unto_o and_o last_o they_o be_v comprise_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o expression_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n ver._n 7._o in_o and_o by_o they_o do_v the_o holy_a spirit_n evidence_n and_o manifest_v his_o power_n for_o the_o effect_n produce_v by_o they_o and_o themselves_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n especial_o some_o of_o they_o do_v evince_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v in_o they_o that_o they_o be_v give_v and_o wrought_v by_o he_o and_o be_v the_o way_n whereby_o he_o act_v his_o own_o power_n and_o grace_n these_o thing_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o the_o name_n of_o these_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o if_o we_o part_v with_o our_o interest_n and_o concern_v in_o they_o we_o must_v part_v with_o no_o small_a portion_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o the_o mention_n of_o they_o direction_n about_o they_o their_o use_n and_o abuse_v do_v so_o frequent_o occur_v that_o if_o we_o be_v not_o concern_v in_o they_o we_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o gospel_n chap._n ii_o difference_n between_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o save_v grace_n §_o 1._o their_o nature_n
in_o general_n which_o in_o the_o next_o place_n we_o inquire_v into_o will_v be_v much_o discover_v in_o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o these_o gift_n do_v agree_v with_o save_v grace_n and_o wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o they_o §_o 2._o there_o be_v three_o thing_n wherein_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o save_v grace_n do_v agree_v 1._o they_o be_v both_o sort_n of_o they_o the_o purchase_n of_o christ_n for_o his_o church_n the_o especial_a fruit_n of_o his_o mediation_n we_o speak_v not_o of_o such_o gift_n or_o endowment_n of_o man_n mind_n as_o consist_v mere_o in_o the_o improvement_n of_o their_o natural_a faculty_n such_o be_v wisdom_n learning_n skill_n in_o art_n and_o science_n which_o those_o may_v abound_v and_o excel_v in_o who_o be_v utter_a stranger_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o frequent_o they_o do_v so_o to_o their_o own_o exaltation_n and_o contempt_n of_o other_o nor_o do_v i_o intend_v ability_n for_o action_n moral_a civil_a or_o political_a as_o fortitude_n skill_n in_o government_n or_o rule_n and_o the_o like_a for_o although_o these_o be_v gift_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n yet_o they_o do_v belong_v unto_o those_o operation_n which_o he_o exercise_v in_o uphold_v or_o rule_v of_o the_o world_n or_o the_o old_a creation_n as_o such_o whereof_o i_o have_v treat_v before_o but_o i_o intend_v those_o alone_o which_o be_v conversant_a about_o the_o gospel_n the_o thing_n and_o duty_n of_o it_o the_o administration_n of_o its_o ordinance_n the_o propagation_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o profession_n of_o its_o way_n and_o herein_o also_o i_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o all_o those_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n about_o sacred_a thing_n which_o any_o of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n enjoy_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o we_o speak_v only_o of_o those_o which_o be_v power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v those_o other_o be_v salt_v to_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n and_o confine_v with_o the_o light_n which_o god_n be_v please_v then_o to_o communicate_v unto_o his_o church_n unto_o the_o gospel_n state_n they_o be_v not_o suit_v nor_o will_v be_v useful_a in_o it_o hence_o the_o prophet_n who_o have_v the_o most_o eminent_a gift_n do_v yet_o all_o of_o they_o come_v short_a of_o john_n the_o baptist_n because_o they_o have_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o gift_n that_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o insight_n into_o his_o work_n of_o mediation_n that_o he_o have_v and_o yet_o also_o he_o come_v short_a of_o he_o that_o be_v least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n because_o his_o gift_n be_v not_o pure_o evangelical_n wherefore_o these_o gift_n whereof_o we_o treat_v be_v such_o as_o belong_v unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n erect_v in_o a_o especial_a manner_n by_o jesus_n christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n for_o he_o be_v exalt_v that_o he_o may_v fill_v all_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n with_o these_o effect_n of_o his_o power_n and_o grace_n the_o power_n therefore_o of_o communicate_v these_o gift_n be_v grant_v unto_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o mediator_n by_o the_o father_n for_o the_o foundation_n and_o edification_n of_o his_o church_n as_o it_o be_v express_v act_v 2._o 33._o and_o by_o they_o be_v his_o kingdom_n both_o set_v up_o and_o propagate_v and_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o world_n these_o be_v the_o weapon_n of_o warfare_n which_o he_o furnish_v his_o disciple_n withal_o when_o he_o give_v they_o commission_n to_o go_v forth_o and_o subdue_v the_o world_n unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o gospel_n act_v 1._o 4_o 8._o and_o mighty_a be_v they_o through_o god_n unto_o that_o purpose_n 2_o cor._n 10._o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o in_o the_o use_n and_o exercise_n of_o they_o do_v the_o gospel_n run_v and_o be_v glorisied_a to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n and_o darkness_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o be_v ever_o able_a to_o erect_v it_o again_o under_o another_o form_n than_o that_o of_o gentilism_n as_o he_o have_v do_v in_o the_o antichristian_a apostasy_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a it_o be_v from_o a_o neglect_n and_o contempt_n of_o these_o gift_n with_o their_o due_a use_n and_o improvement_n when_o man_n begin_v to_o neglect_v the_o attain_n of_o these_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o they_o in_o pray_v in_o preach_v in_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o all_o the_o administration_n and_o whole_a worship_n of_o the_o church_n betake_v themselves_o whole_o to_o their_o own_o ability_n and_o invention_n accommodate_v unto_o their_o ease_n and_o secular_a interest_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n for_o satan_n to_o erect_v again_o his_o kingdom_n though_o not_o in_o the_o old_a manner_n because_o of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o have_v make_v impression_n on_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n which_o he_o can_v not_o obliterate_v wherefore_o he_o never_o attempt_v open_o any_o more_o to_o set_v up_o heathrnism_n or_o paganism_n with_o the_o god_n of_o the_o old_a world_n and_o their_o worship_n but_o he_o insensible_o raise_v another_o kingdom_n which_o pretend_v some_o likeness_n unto_o and_o compliance_n with_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o word_n though_o it_o come_v at_o last_o to_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n express_o contrary_a thereunto_o this_o be_v his_o kingdom_n of_o apostasy_n and_o darkness_n under_o the_o papal_a antichristianism_n and_o woeful_a degeneracy_n of_o other_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n for_o when_o man_n who_o pretend_v themselves_o entrust_v with_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n do_v wilful_o cast_v away_o those_o weapon_n of_o their_o warfare_n whereby_o the_o world_n be_v subdue_v unto_o he_o and_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v keep_v in_o subjection_n by_o they_o what_o else_o can_v ensue_v §_o 3._o by_o these_o gift_n i_o say_v do_v the_o lord_n christ_n demonstrate_v his_o power_n and_o exercise_v his_o rule_n external_n force_n and_o carnal_a weapon_n be_v far_o from_o his_o thought_n as_o unbecoming_a his_o absolute_a sovereignty_n over_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n his_o infinite_a power_n and_o holiness_n neither_o do_v any_o ever_o betake_v themselves_o unto_o they_o in_o the_o affair_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n but_o either_o when_o they_o have_v utter_o lose_v and_o abandon_v these_o spiritual_a weapon_n or_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v sufficient_a to_o maintain_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o gospel_n though_o original_o they_o be_v so_o to_o introduce_v and_o fix_v it_o in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v that_o although_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v sufficient_a and_o effectual_a to_o bring_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n against_o all_o opposition_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o so_o to_o maintain_v it_o which_o they_o may_v do_v well_o once_o more_o to_o consider_v herein_o therefore_o they_o agree_v with_o save_v grace_n for_o that_o they_o be_v peculiarly_a from_o jesus_n christ_n the_o mediator_n be_v confess_v by_o all_o unless_o it_o be_v by_o such_o as_o by_o who_o all_o real_a internal_a grace_n be_v deny_v but_o the_o sanctify_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n with_o their_o respect_n unto_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o mediator_n have_v be_v sufficient_o before_o confirm_v §_o 4._o 2._o there_o be_v a_o agreement_n between_o save_v grace_n and_o spiritual_a gift_n with_o respect_n unto_o their_o immediate_a efficient_a cause_n they_o be_v both_o sort_n of_o they_o wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o former_a or_o save_a grace_n i_o have_v already_o treat_v of_o that_o argument_n at_o large_a nor_o will_v any_o deny_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o author_n of_o these_o grace_n but_o those_o that_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o that_o these_o gift_n be_v so_o wrought_v by_o he_o be_v express_o declare_v wherever_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o they_o in_o general_a or_o particular_a wherefore_o when_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v such_o gift_n all_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v their_o author_n by_o who_o he_o be_v deny_v so_o to_o be_v it_o be_v only_o because_o they_o deny_v the_o continuance_n of_o any_o such_o gift_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o shall_v disprove_v §_o 5._o 3._o herein_o also_o they_o agree_v that_o both_o sort_n of_o they_o be_v design_v unto_o the_o good_a benefit_n ornament_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v the_o proper_a seat_n and_o subject_n of_o they_o to_o it_o be_v they_o grant_v and_o in_o it_o do_v they_o reside_v for_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n unto_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n the_o
fullness_n of_o he_o that_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o ephes._n 1._o 22_o 23._o but_o this_o church_n fall_v under_o a_o double_a consideration_n first_o as_o it_o be_v believe_v second_o as_o it_o be_v profess_v in_o the_o first_o respect_n absolute_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o as_o such_o be_v the_o peculiar_a subject_n of_o save_v grace_n this_o be_v that_o church_n which_o christ_n love_v and_o give_v himself_o for_o it_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v and_o cleanse_v it_o and_o present_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blemish_n eph._n 5._o 26_o 27._o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o save_v grace_n and_o by_o a_o participation_n thereof_o do_v man_n become_v member_n of_o this_o church_n and_o not_o otherwise_o and_o hereby_o be_v the_o profess_v church_n quicken_v and_o enable_v unto_o profession_n in_o a_o acceptable_a manner_n ●or_a the_o elect_n receive_v grace_n unto_o this_o end_n in_o this_o world_n that_o they_o may_v glorify_v christ_n and_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o col._n 1._o 6._o john_n 15._o 8._o but_o gift_n be_v bestow_v on_o the_o profess_v church_n to_o render_v it_o visible_a in_o such_o a_o way_n as_o whereby_o god_n be_v glorify_v grace_n give_v a_o invisible_a life_n to_o the_o church_n gift_n give_v it_o a_o visible_a profession_n for_o hence_o do_v the_o church_n become_v organical_a and_o dispose_v into_o that_o order_n which_o be_v beautiful_a and_o comely_a where_o any_o church_n be_v organise_v mere_o by_o outward_a rule_n perhaps_o of_o their_o own_o devise_v and_o make_v profession_n only_o in_o a_o attendance_n unto_o outward_a order_n not_o follow_v the_o lead_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o gift_n both_o as_o to_o order_n and_o discharge_v of_o the_o duty_n of_o profession_n it_o be_v but_o the_o image_n of_o a_o church_n want_v a_o animate_v principle_n and_o form_n that_o profession_n which_o render_v a_o church_n visible_a according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o orderly_a exercise_n of_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n bestow_v on_o it_o in_o a_o conversation_n evidence_v the_o invisible_a principle_n of_o save_v grace_n now_o these_o gift_n be_v confer_v on_o the_o church_n in_o order_n unto_o the_o edification_n of_o itself_o in_o love_n ephes._n 4_o 16._o as_o also_o the_o propagation_n of_o its_o profession_n in_o the_o world_n as_o shall_v be_v declare_v afterward_o wherefore_o both_o of_o these_o sort_n have_v in_o general_a the_o same_o end_n or_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n unto_o the_o same_o purpose_n namely_o the_o good_a and_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o be_v respective_o suit_v to_o promote_v they_o §_o 6._o it_o may_v also_o be_v add_v that_o they_o agree_v herein_o that_o they_o have_v both_o the_o same_o respect_n unto_o the_o bounty_n of_o christ._n hence_o every_o grace_n be_v a_o gift_n that_o which_o be_v give_v and_o free_o bestow_v on_o they_o that_o have_v it_o mat._n 13._o 11._o phil._n 1._o 29._o and_o although_o on_o the_o other_o side_n every_o gift_n be_v not_o a_o grace_n yet_o proceed_v from_o gracious_a favour_n and_o bounty_n they_o be_v so_o call_v rom._n 12._o 6._o ephes._n 4._o 7._o how_o in_o their_o due_a exercise_n they_o be_v mutual_o helpful_a and_o assistant_n unto_o each_o other_o shall_v be_v declare_v afterward_o §_o 7._o second_o we_o may_v consider_v wherein_z wherein_o the_o difference_n lie_v or_o do_v consist_v which_o be_v between_o 〈◊〉_d spiritual_a gift_n and_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o this_o may_v be_v see_v in_o sundry_a instance_n as_o 1._o save_v grace_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o fruit_n or_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5._o 22._o ephes._n 5._o 9_o phil._n 1._o 11._o now_o fruit_n proceed_v from_o a_o abide_a root_n and_o flock_n of_o who_o nature_n they_o do_v partake_v there_o must_v be_v a_o good_a tree_n to_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n mat._n 12._o 33._o no_o external_a water_v or_o application_n unto_o the_o earth_n will_v cause_v it_o to_o bring_v forth_o useful_a fruit_n unless_o they_o be_v root_n from_o which_o they_o spring_v and_o be_v educe_v the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v as_o the_o root_n unto_o these_o fruit_n the_o root_n which_o bear_v they_o and_o which_o they_o do_v not_o bear_v as_o rom._n 11._o 18._o therefore_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v he_o give_v unto_o man_n before_o the_o production_n of_o any_o of_o these_o fruit_n thereby_o be_v they_o ingraft_v into_o the_o olive_n be_v make_v such_o branch_n in_o christ_n the_o true_a vine_n as_o derive_v vital_a juice_n nourishment_n and_o fructify_a virtue_n from_o he_o even_o by_o the_o spirit_n so_o be_v he_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v up_o unto_o everlasting_a life_n john_n 4._o 14._o he_o be_v a_o spring_n in_o believer_n and_o all_o save_a grace_n be_v but_o water_n arise_v from_o that_o live_n overflow_a spring_n from_o he_o a_o root_n or_o spring_n as_o a_o internal_a virtue_n power_n or_o principle_n do_v all_o these_o fruit_n come_v to_o this_o end_n do_v he_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o abide_v with_o they_o according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n john_n 14._o 17._o rom._n 8._o 11._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16._o whereby_o the_o lord_n christ_n effect_v his_o purpose_n in_o ordain_v his_o disciple_n to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n that_o shall_v remain_v john_n 15._o 16._o in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o holy_a residence_n he_o work_v these_o effect_n free_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o have_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o save_a grace_n but_o what_o be_v so_o a_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o have_v not_o first_o these_o grace_n and_o then_o by_o virtue_n of_o they_o receive_v the_o spirit_n for_o whence_o shall_v we_o have_v they_o of_o ourselves_o but_o the_o spirit_n bestow_v on_o we_o work_v they_o in_o we_o and_o give_v they_o a_o spiritual_a divine_a nature_n in_o conformity_n unto_o his_o own_o §_o 8._o with_o gift_n single_o consider_v it_o be_v otherwise_o they_o be_v indeed_o work_v and_o effect_n but_o not_o proper_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n nor_o be_v any_o where_o so_o call_v they_o be_v effect_n of_o his_o operation_n upon_o man_n not_o fruit_n of_o his_o work_n in_o they_o and_o therefore_o many_o receive_v these_o gift_n who_o never_o receive_v the_o spirit_n as_o to_o the_o principal_a end_n for_o which_o he_o be_v promise_v they_o receive_v he_o not_o to_o sanctify_v and_o make_v they_o temple_n unto_o god_n though_o metonymical_o with_o respect_n unto_o his_o outward_a effect_n they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o he_o this_o render_v they_o of_o a_o different_a nature_n and_o kind_n from_o save_v grace_n for_o whereas_o there_o be_v a_o agreement_n and_o coincidence_n between_o they_o in_o the_o respect_v before_o mention_v and_o whereas_o the_o seat_n and_o subject_n of_o they_o that_o be_v of_o gift_n absolute_o and_o principal_o of_o grace_n also_o be_v the_o mind_n the_o difference_n of_o their_o nature_n proceed_v from_o the_o different_a manner_n of_o their_o communication_n from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n §_o 9_o second_o save_v grace_n proceed_v from_o or_o be_v the_o effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o elect_v love_n this_n i_o have_v prove_v before_o in_o our_o enquiry_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o holiness_n see_v it_o direct_o assert_v ephes._n 1._o 3_o 4._o 2_o thes._n 2._o 13._o act_n 2_o 41._o chap._n 13._o 48._o who_o god_n gracious_o choose_v and_o design_v unto_o eternal_a life_n they_o he_o prepare_v for_o it_o by_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o mean_n which_o be_v necessary_a unto_o that_o end_n rom._n 8._o 28_o 29_o 30._o hereof_o sanctification_n or_o the_o communication_n of_o save_a grace_n be_v comprehensive_a for_o we_o be_v choose_v unto_o salvation_n through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2_o thes._n 2._o 13._o for_o this_o be_v that_o whereby_o we_o be_v make_v meet_v for_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o light_n col._n 1._o 12._o the_o end_n of_o god_n in_o election_n be_v the_o sonship_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect_n unto_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n ephes._n 1._o 5_o 6._o and_o this_o can_v be_v unless_o his_o image_n be_v renew_v in_o they_o in_o holiness_n or_o save_v grace_n these_o therefore_o he_o work_v in_o they_o in_o pursuit_n of_o his_o eternal_a purpose_n therein_o but_o gift_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n which_o be_v no_o more_o but_o so_o and_o where_o they_o be_v solitary_a or_o alone_a be_v only_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o temporary_a election_n thus_o god_n choose_v some_o man_n into_o some_o office_n in_o the_o church_n or_o unto_o some_o
work_n in_o the_o world_n as_o this_o include_v a_o prefer_v they_o before_o or_o above_o other_o or_o the_o use_v they_o when_o other_o be_v not_o use_v we_o call_v it_o election_n and_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v their_o fit_v for_o and_o separation_n unto_o their_o office_n or_o work_n and_o this_o temporary_a election_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o rule_n of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o gift_n so_o he_o choose_v saul_n to_o be_v king_n over_o his_o people_n and_o give_v he_o thereon_o another_o spirit_n or_o gift_n fit_v he_o for_o rule_n and_o government_n so_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n choose_v and_o call_v at_o the_o first_o twelve_o to_o be_v his_o apostle_n and_o give_v unto_o they_o all_o alike_o miraculous_a gift_n his_o temporary_a choice_n of_o they_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o communication_n of_o gift_n unto_o they_o by_o virtue_n hereof_o no_o save_a grace_n be_v communicate_v unto_o they_o for_o one_o of_o they_o never_o arrive_v unto_o a_o participation_n of_o they_o have_v not_o i_o say_v our_o saviour_n unto_o they_o choose_v you_o twelve_o and_o one_o of_o you_o be_v a_o devil_n john_n 6._o 70._o he_o have_v choose_v they_o unto_o their_o office_n and_o endow_v they_o with_o extraordinary_a gift_n for_o the_o discharge_v thereof_o but_o one_o of_o they_o be_v not_o choose_v unto_o salvation_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o ordain_v unto_o eternal_a life_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n or_o one_o certain_o appoint_v unto_o destruction_n or_o before_o of_o old_a ordain_v unto_o that_o condemnation_n he_o continue_v void_a of_o all_o sanctify_a grace_n so_o as_o unto_o any_o acceptation_n with_o god_n he_o be_v in_o no_o better_a condition_n than_o the_o devil_n himself_o who_o work_n he_o be_v to_o do_v yet_o be_v he_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o choice_n unto_o the_o office_n of_o apostleship_n for_o a_o season_n endow_v with_o the_o same_o spiritual_a gift_n that_o the_o other_o be_v and_o this_o distinction_n our_o saviour_n himself_o do_v plain_o lay_v down_o for_o whereas_o he_o say_v john_n 6._o 70._o i_o have_v choose_v you_o twelve_o that_o be_v with_o a_o temporary_a choice_n unto_o office_n john_n 13._o 18._o he_o say_v i_o speak_v not_o of_o you_o all_o i_o know_v who_o i_o have_v choose_v so_o except_v judas_n from_o that_o number_n as_o be_v afterward_o express_o declare_v for_o the_o election_n which_o here_o he_o intend_v be_v that_o which_o be_v accompany_v with_o a_o infallible_a ordination_n unto_o abide_v fruitbearing_a chap._n 15._o 16._o that_o be_v eternal_a election_n wherein_o judas_n have_v no_o interest_n §_o 10._o and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o general_a and_o in_o other_o instance_n when_o god_n choose_v any_o one_o to_o eternal_a life_n he_o will_v in_o pursuit_n of_o that_o purpose_n of_o he_o communicate_v save_a grace_n unto_o they_o and_o although_o all_o believer_n have_v gift_n also_o sufficient_a to_o enable_v they_o unto_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o duty_n in_o their_o station_n or_o condition_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o depend_v on_o the_o decree_n of_o election_n and_o where_o god_n call_v any_o or_o choose_v any_o unto_o a_o office_n charge_n or_o work_n in_o the_o church_n he_o always_o furnish_v they_o with_o gift_n suit_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o they_o he_o do_v not_o so_o indeed_o unto_o all_o that_o will_v take_v any_o office_n unto_o themselves_o but_o he_o do_v so_o unto_o all_o who_o he_o call_v thereunto_o yea_o his_o call_n be_v no_o otherwise_o know_v but_o by_o the_o gift_n which_o he_o communicate_v for_o the_o discharge_n of_o the_o work_n or_o office_n whereunto_o any_o be_v call_v in_o common_a use_n i_o confess_v all_o thing_n run_v contrary_a hereunto_o most_o man_n great_o insist_v on_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o outward_a call_n unto_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o so_o far_o no_o doubt_n they_o do_v well_o for_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o order_n that_o be_v of_o his_o own_o but_o whereas_o they_o limit_v this_o outward_a call_n of_o they_o unto_o certain_a person_n 〈◊〉_d modes_n and_o ceremony_n of_o their_o own_o without_o ●hich_v they_o will_v not_o allow_v that_o any_o man_n be_v tight_o call_v unto_o the_o ministry_n they_o do_v but_o contend_v to_o oppress_v the_o conscience_n of_o other_o by_o their_o power_n and_o with_o their_o invention_n but_o their_o most_o pernicious_a mistake_n be_v yet_o remain_v so_o that_o person_n have_v or_o do_v receive_v a_o outward_a call_n in_o their_o mode_n and_o way_n which_o what_o it_o have_v of_o a_o call_v in_o it_o i_o know_v not_o they_o be_v not_o solicitous_a whether_o they_o be_v call_v of_o god_n or_o no._n for_o they_o continual_o admit_v of_o they_o unto_o their_o outward_a call_n on_o who_o god_n have_v bestow_v no_o spiritual_a gift_n to_o fit_v they_o for_o their_o office_n whence_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a as_o if_o write_v with_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n that_o he_o never_o call_v they_o thereunto_o they_o be_v as_o watchful_a as_o they_o be_v able_a that_o god_n himself_o shall_v impose_v none_o on_o they_o beside_o their_o way_n and_o order_n or_o their_o call_n for_o let_v a_o man_n be_v furnish_v with_o ministerial_a gift_n never_o so_o excellent_a yet_o if_o he_o will_v not_o come_v up_o to_o their_o call_n they_o will_v do_v what_o lie_v in_o they_o for_o ever_o to_o shut_v he_o out_o of_o the_o ministry_n but_o they_o will_v impose_v upon_o god_n without_o his_o call_n every_o day_n for_o if_o they_o ordain_v any_o one_o in_o their_o way_n unto_o a_o office_n though_o he_o have_v no_o more_o of_o spiritual_a gift_n than_o balaam_n ass_n yet_o if_o you_o will_v believe_v they_o christ_n must_v accept_v of_o he_o for_o a_o minister_n of_o his_o whether_o he_o will_v or_o no._n but_o let_v man_n dispose_v of_o thing_n as_o they_o please_v and_o as_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o they_o christ_n have_v no_o other_o order_n in_o this_o matter_n but_o as_o every_o one_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n so_o let_v they_o minister_v as_o good_a steward_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 4._o 10._o and_o rom._n 12._o 6_o 7_o 8._o it_o be_v true_a that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n but_o he_o that_o be_v and_o until_o he_o be_v solemn_o call_v and_o set_v apart_o thereunto_o by_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v no_o less_o true_a that_o no_o church_n have_v either_o rule_n or_o right_o so_o to_o call_v or_o set_v apart_o any_o one_o to_o the_o ministry_n who_o christ_n have_v not_o previous_o call_v by_o the_o communication_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n necessary_a to_o the_o discharge_v of_o his_o office_n and_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v large_o insist_v on_o afterward_o §_o 11._o three_o save_v grace_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o bestow_v in_o the_o accomplishment_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o promise_v thereof_o this_o have_v be_v declare_v elsewhere_o at_o large_a where_o we_o treat_v of_o regeneration_n and_o sanctification_n all_o that_o be_v take_v into_o this_o covenant_n be_v sanctify_v and_o make_v holy_a there_o be_v no_o grace_n design_v unto_o any_o in_o the_o eternal_a purpose_n of_o god_n none_o purchase_v or_o procure_v by_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v comprise_v in_o and_o exhibit_v by_o the_o promise_v of_o the_o covenant_n wherefore_o they_o only_a who_o be_v take_v into_o that_o covenant_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o save_v grace_n and_o they_o be_v all_o so_o thing_n be_v not_o absolute_o so_o with_o respect_n unto_o spiritual_a gift_n although_o they_o also_o in_o some_o sense_n belong_v unto_o the_o covenant_n for_o the_o promise_v of_o the_o covenant_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n 1_o such_o as_o belong_v unto_o the_o internal_a form_n and_o essence_n of_o it_o 2_o such_o as_o belong_v unto_o its_o outward_a administration_n that_o be_v the_o way_n and_o mean_n whereby_o it_o be_v internal_a grace_n be_v make_v effectual_a save_v grace_n proceed_v from_o the_o former_a gift_n relate_v unto_o the_o latter_a for_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o plentiful_a effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v frequent_o apply_v unto_o he_o as_o he_o work_v and_o effect_n evangelical_n gift_n extraordinary_a and_o ordinary_a in_o man_n do_v belong_v unto_o the_o new_a covenant_n not_o as_o unto_o its_o internal_a essence_n and_o form_n but_o as_o unto_o its_o outward_a administration_n and_o if_o you_o overthrow_v this_o distinction_n that_o the_o covenant_n be_v consider_v either_o with_o respect_n unto_o its_o internal_a grace_n or_o it_o be_v external_n administration_n every_o thing_n in_o religion_n will_v be_v cast_v into_o confusion_n take_v away_o internal_a
from_o external_n cause_n and_o consideration_n and_o 1_o as_o to_o the_o different_a subject_n of_o they_o spiritual_a gift_n be_v place_v and_o seat_v in_o the_o mind_n or_o understanding_n only_o whether_o they_o be_v ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a they_o have_v no_o other_o hold_v nor_o residence_n in_o the_o soul_n and_o they_o be_v in_o the_o mind_n as_o it_o be_v notional_a and_o theoretical_a rather_o than_o as_o it_o be_v practical_a they_o be_v intellectual_a ability_n and_o no_o more_o i_o speak_v of_o they_o which_o have_v any_o residence_n in_o we_o for_o some_o gift_n as_o miracle_n and_o tongue_n consist_v only_o in_o a_o transient_a operation_n of_o a_o extraordinary_a power_n of_o all_o other_o illumination_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o spiritual_a light_n their_o matter_n so_o the_o apostle_n declare_v in_o his_o order_n of_o expression_n heb._n 6._o 4._o the_o will_n and_o the_o affection_n and_o the_o conscience_n be_v unconcern_v in_o they_o wherefore_o they_o change_v not_o the_o heart_n with_o power_n although_o they_o may_v reform_v the_o life_n by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o light_n and_o although_o god_n do_v not_o ordinary_o bestow_v they_o on_o flagitious_a person_n nor_o continue_v they_o with_o such_o as_o after_o the_o reception_n of_o they_o become_v flagitious_a yet_o they_o may_v be_v in_o those_o who_o be_v unrenewed_a and_o have_v nothing_o in_o they_o to_o preserve_v man_n absolute_o from_o the_o worst_a of_o sin_n but_o save_v grace_n possess_v the_o whole_a soul_n man_n be_v thereby_o sanctify_v throughout_o in_o the_o whole_a spirit_n soul_n and_o body_n 1_o thes._n 5._o 17._o as_o have_v be_v at_o large_a declare_v not_o the_o mind_n only_o be_v saving_o enlighten_v but_o there_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n infuse_v into_o the_o whole_a soul_n enable_v it_o in_o all_o its_o power_n and_o faculty_n to_o act_v obediential_o unto_o god_n who_o nature_n have_v be_v full_o explain_v elsewhere_o hence_o 2._o they_o differ_v in_o their_o operation_n for_o grace_n change_v and_o transform_v the_o whole_a soul_n into_o its_o own_o nature_n isa._n 11._o 6_o 7_o 8._o rom._n 6._o 17._o chap._n 12._o 2._o 2_o cor._n 3._o 18._o it_o be_v a_o new_a a_o divine_a nature_n unto_o the_o soul_n and_o be_v in_o it_o a_o habit_n dispose_v incline_v and_o enable_v of_o it_o unto_o obedience_n it_o act_v itself_o in_o faith_n love_n and_o holiness_n in_o all_o thing_n but_o gift_n of_o themselves_o have_v not_o this_o power_n nor_o these_o operation_n they_o may_v and_o do_v in_o those_o who_o be_v possess_v of_o they_o in_o and_o under_o their_o exercise_n make_v great_a impression_n on_o their_o own_o affection_n but_o they_o change_v not_o the_o heart_n they_o renew_v not_o the_o mind_n they_o transform_v not_o the_o soul_n into_o the_o image_n of_o god_n hence_o where_o grace_n be_v predominant_a every_o notion_n of_o light_n and_o truth_n which_o be_v communicate_v unto_o the_o mind_n be_v immediate_o turn_v into_o practice_n by_o have_v the_o whole_a soul_n cast_v into_o the_o mould_n of_o it_o where_o only_a gift_n bear_v sway_n the_o use_n of_o it_o in_o duty_n unto_o edification_n be_v best_a whereunto_o it_o be_v design_v 3._o as_o to_o effect_n or_o consequent_n the_o great_a difference_n be_v that_o on_o the_o part_n of_o christ_n christ_n do_v thereby_o dwell_v and_o reside_v in_o our_o heart_n when_o concern_v many_o of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o these_o other_o spiritual_a endowment_n he_o will_v say_v depart_v from_o i_o i_o never_o know_v you_o which_o he_o will_v not_o say_v of_o any_o one_o who_o soul_n he_o have_v inhabit_v §_o 16._o these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o principal_a agreement_n and_o difference_n between_o save_v grace_n and_o spiritual_a gift_n both_o sort_n of_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o believer_n by_o that_o one_o and_o selfsame_a spirit_n which_o divide_v to_o every_o one_o as_o he_o will_n and_o sor_n a_o close_a of_o this_o discourse_n i_o shall_v only_o add_v that_o where_o these_o grace_n and_o gift_n in_o any_o eminency_n or_o good_a degree_n be_v bestow_v on_o the_o same_o person_n they_o be_v exceed_o helpful_a unto_o each_o other_o a_o soul_n sanctify_v by_o save_v grace_n be_v the_o only_a proper_a soil_n for_o gift_n to_o flourish_v in_o grace_n influence_v gift_n unto_o a_o due_a exercise_n prevent_v their_o abuse_n stir_v they_o up_o unto_o proper_a occasion_n keep_v they_o from_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o pride_n or_o contention_n and_o subordinate_n they_o in_o all_o thing_n unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n when_o the_o act_n of_o grace_n and_o gift_n be_v inseparable_a as_o when_o in_o prayer_n the_o spirit_n be_v a_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o it_o work_v together_o when_o utterance_n in_o other_o duty_n be_v always_o accompany_v with_o faith_n and_o love_n then_o be_v god_n glorify_v and_o our_o own_o salvation_n promote_v then_o have_v edify_v gift_n a_o beauty_n and_o lustre_n upon_o they_o and_o general_o be_v most_o successful_a when_o they_o be_v clothe_v and_o adorn_v with_o humility_n meekness_n a_o reverence_n of_o god_n and_o compassion_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n yea_o when_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n no_o manifestation_n of_o their_o be_v accompany_v with_o these_o and_o the_o like_a grace_n they_o be_v but_o as_o a_o parable_n or_o wise_a say_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o fool._n gift_n on_o the_o other_o side_n excite_v and_o stir_v up_o grace_n unto_o its_o proper_a exercise_n and_o operation_n how_o often_o be_v faith_n love_n and_o delight_n in_o god_n excite_v and_o draw_v forth_o unto_o especial_a exercise_n in_o believer_n by_o the_o use_n of_o their_o own_o gift_n and_o thus_o much_o may_v suffice_v as_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o gift_n in_o general_n we_o next_o consider_v they_o under_o their_o most_o general_a distribution_n chap._n iii_o of_o gift_n and_o office_n extraordinary_a and_o first_o of_o office_n §_o 1._o the_o spiritual_a gift_n whereof_o we_o treat_v respect_v either_o power_n and_o duty_n in_o the_o church_n or_o duty_n only_o gift_n that_o respect_v power_n and_o duty_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n or_o there_o have_v be_v or_o be_v at_o any_o time_n two_o sort_n of_o such_o power_n and_o duty_n the_o first_o whereof_o be_v extraordinary_a the_o latter_a ordinary_n and_o consequent_o the_o gift_n subservient_fw-fr unto_o they_o must_v be_v of_o two_o sort_n also_o which_o must_v further_o be_v clear_v §_o 2._o wherever_o power_n be_v give_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o church_n and_o duiy_n be_v require_v in_o the_o execution_n of_o that_o power_n unto_o the_o end_v of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o virtue_n thereof_o there_o be_v a_o office_n in_o the_o church_n for_o a_o ecclesiastical_a office_n be_v a_o especial_a power_n give_v by_o christ_n unto_o any_o person_n or_o person_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o especial_a duty_n belong_v unto_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o especial_a manner_n and_o these_o office_n have_v be_v of_o two_o sort_n 1._o extraordinary_n 2._o ordinary_a some_o seem_v to_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o extraordinary_a power_n or_o extraordinary_a office_n in_o the_o church_n for_o they_o do_v provide_v successor_n unto_o all_o who_o be_v plead_v to_o have_v be_v of_o that_o kind_n and_o those_o such_o as_o look_v how_o far_o short_a they_o come_v of_o they_o in_o other_o thing_n do_v exceed_v they_o in_o power_n and_o rule_n i_o shall_v not_o contend_v about_o word_n and_o shall_v therefore_o only_o inquire_v what_o it_o be_v that_o constitute_v they_o to_o be_v officer_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o church_n who_o thence_o we_o call_v extraordinary_a and_o than_o if_o other_o can_v due_o lay_v claim_n unto_o they_o they_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o pass_v for_o their_o successor_n §_o 3._o there_o be_v four_o thing_n which_o constitute_v a_o extraordinary_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o be_v require_v in_o and_o do_v constitute_v a_o extraordinary_a office_n 1_o a_o extraordinary_a call_n unto_o a_o office_n such_o as_o none_o other_o have_v or_o can_v have_v by_o virtue_n of_o any_o law_n order_n or_o constitution_n whatever_o 2._o a_o extraordinary_a power_n communicate_v unto_o person_n so_o call_v enable_v they_o to_o act_v what_o they_o be_v so_o call_v unto_o wherein_o the_o essence_n of_o any_o office_n do_v consist_v 3._o extraordinary_a gift_n for_o the_o exercise_n and_o discharge_v of_o that_o power_n 4._o extraordinary_a employment_n as_o to_o its_o extent_n and_o measure_n require_v extraordinary_a labour_n travail_n zeal_n and_o self-denial_n all_o these_o do_v and_o must_v concur_v in_o that_o office_n and_o unto_o those_o office_n which_o we_o call_v extraordinary_a §_o 4._o
virtue_n of_o a_o immediate_a extraordinary_a influence_n of_o divine_a power_n transient_o affect_v their_o mind_n such_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n healing_n and_o the_o like_a there_o be_v no_o extraordinary_a officer_n but_o they_o have_v these_o gift_n but_o yet_o they_o can_v work_v or_o operate_v by_o virtue_n of_o they_o only_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v they_o especial_a direction_n for_o the_o put_v forth_o of_o his_o power_n in_o they_o so_o it_o be_v say_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n preach_v at_o iconium_n the_o lord_n give_v testimony_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o grant_v sign_n and_o wonder_n to_o be_v do_v by_o their_o hand_n act_n 14._o 3._o the_o work_n of_o sign_n and_o miracle_n be_v the_o immediate_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n nor_o can_v any_o power_n or_o faculty_n efficient_o productive_a of_o such_o effect_n abide_v in_o the_o soul_n or_o mind_n of_o man_n these_o miraculous_a operation_n be_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n send_v down_o from_o heaven_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n see_v heb._n 2._o 4._o with_o our_o exposition_n thereon_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o more_o in_o these_o gift_n which_o absolute_o exceed_v the_o whole_a faculty_n of_o our_o nature_n but_o the_o design_v of_o certain_a person_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o and_o with_o who_o ministry_n he_o will_v himself_o effect_v miraculous_a operation_n second_o they_o be_v such_o as_o consist_v in_o extraordinary_a endowment_n and_o improvement_n of_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n or_o mind_n of_o man_n such_o as_o wisdom_n knowledge_n utterance_n and_o the_o like_a now_o where_o these_o be_v bestow_v on_o any_o in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n as_o they_o be_v on_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n they_o differ_v only_o in_o degree_n from_o they_o that_o be_v ordinary_a and_o still_o continue_v but_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o they_o whereof_o we_o shall_v treat_v afterward_o now_o whereas_o all_o these_o gift_n of_o both_o sort_n be_v express_o and_o distinct_o enumerate_v and_o set_v down_o by_o our_o apostle_n in_o one_o place_n i_o shall_v consider_v they_o as_o they_o be_v there_o propose_v by_o he_o §_o 2._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o but_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o for_o to_o one_o be_v give_v by_o the_o spirit_n the_o word_n of_o wisdom_n to_o another_o the_o word_n of_o knowledge_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n to_o another_o faith_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o heal_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n to_o another_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n to_o another_o prophecy_n to_o another_o discern_v of_o spirit_n to_o another_o divers_a kind_n of_o tongue_n to_o another_o the_o interpretation_n of_o tongue_n but_o all_o these_o work_v that_o one_o and_o selfsame_a spirit_n divide_v to_o every_o one_o several_o as_o he_o will_n the_o general_a concernment_n of_o this_o passage_n in_o the_o apostle_n be_v declare_v and_o the_o context_n open_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o discourse_n on_o this_o subject_n i_o shall_v only_o now_o consider_v the_o especial_a spiritual_a gift_n that_o be_v here_o enumerate_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v nine_o in_o number_n lay_v down_o promiscuous_o without_o respect_n unto_o any_o order_n or_o dependence_n of_o one_o upon_o another_o although_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o those_o first_o place_v be_v the_o principal_a or_o of_o principal_a use_n in_o the_o church_n §_o 3._o the_o first_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n of_o wisdom_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o be_v of_o the_o same_o signification_n with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o hebrew_n which_o often_o signify_v a_o thing_n or_o matter_n wherefore_o the_o word_n of_o wisdom_n be_v nothing_o but_o wisdom_n itself_o and_o our_o enquiry_n be_v what_o be_v that_o wisdom_n which_o be_v a_o peculiar_a and_o a_o especial_a gift_n in_o those_o day_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n promise_v unto_o his_o disciple_n that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n which_o all_o their_o adversary_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o gainsay_v nor_o resist_v luke_n 21._o 15._o this_o will_v be_v our_o rule_n in_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o gift_n that_o which_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o be_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o its_o truth_n against_o powerful_a persecute_v adversary_n for_o although_o they_o have_v the_o truth_n on_o their_o side_n yet_o be_v man_n ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a they_o may_v just_o fear_v that_o when_o they_o be_v bring_v before_o king_n and_o ruler_n and_o priest_n they_o shall_v be_v baffle_v in_o their_o profession_n and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v the_o truth_n wherefore_o this_o promise_n of_o a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n respect_v spiritual_a ability_n and_o utterance_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o they_o be_v call_v into_o question_n about_o it_o spiritual_a ability_n of_o mind_n be_v the_o wisdom_n and_o utterance_n or_o freedom_n of_o speech_n be_v the_o mouth_n here_o promise_v a_o eminent_a instance_n of_o the_o accomplishment_n hereof_o we_o have_v in_o peter_n and_o john_n act_v 4._o for_o upon_o their_o make_v a_o defence_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n therein_o such_o as_o their_o adversary_n be_v not_o able_a to_o gainsay_v nor_o resist_v it_o be_v say_v that_o when_o the_o ruler_n and_o elder_n see_v their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v their_o utterance_n in_o defence_n of_o their_o cause_n with_o boldness_n and_o so_o the_o wisdom_n wherewith_o it_o be_v accompany_v consider_v that_o they_o be_v unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a they_o be_v astonish_v and_o only_o consider_v that_o they_o have_v be_v with_o jesus_n v_o 13._o and_o he_o it_o be_v who_o in_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o his_o promise_n have_v give_v they_o that_o spiritual_a wisdom_n and_o utterance_n which_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v so_o it_o be_v say_v express_o of_o stephen_n that_o his_o adversary_n be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v the_o wisdom_n and_o spirit_n whereby_o he_o speak_v act_n 6._o 10._o wherefore_o this_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v a_o spiritual_a skill_n and_o ability_n to_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o question_v oppose_a or_o blaspheme_v and_o this_o gift_n be_v eminent_a in_o those_o primitive_a time_n when_o a_o company_n of_o unlearned_a man_n be_v able_a upon_o all_o occasion_n to_o maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o truth_n which_o they_o believe_v and_o profess_v before_o and_o against_o doctor_n scribe_n lawyer_n ruler_n of_o synagogus_fw-la yea_o prince_n and_o king_n continual_o so_o confound_v their_o adversary_n as_o that_o be_v obstinate_a in_o their_o unbelief_n they_o be_v force_v to_o cover_v their_o shame_n by_o betake_v themselves_o unto_o rage_n and_o bestial_a fury_n act_v 6._o 10_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o chap._n 7._o 54._o chap._n 22._o 22_o 23._o as_o have_v be_v the_o manner_n of_o all_o their_o successor_n ever_o since_o §_o 4._o now_o although_o this_o be_v a_o especial_a kind_n of_o wisdom_n a_o eminent_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherein_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o great_o concern_v namely_o a_o ability_n to_o manage_v and_o defend_v the_o truth_n in_o time_n of_o trial_n and_o danger_n to_o the_o confusion_n of_o its_o adversary_n yet_o i_o suppose_v the_o wisdom_n here_o intend_v be_v not_o absolute_o consign_v thereunto_o though_o it_o be_v principal_o intend_v peter_n speak_v of_o paul_n epistle_n affirm_v that_o they_o be_v write_v according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v into_o he_o 2_o pet._n 3._o 15._o that_o be_v that_o especial_a gift_n of_o spiritual_a wisdom_n for_o the_o management_n of_o gospel_n truth_n unto_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v and_o he_o that_o will_v understand_v what_o this_o wisdom_n be_v must_v be_v thorough_o conversant_a in_o the_o write_n of_o that_o apostle_n for_o indeed_o the_o wisdom_n that_o he_o use_v in_o the_o management_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o due_a consideration_n of_o all_o person_n occasion_n circumstance_n temptation_n of_o man_n and_o church_n of_o their_o state_n condition_n strength_n or_o weakness_n growth_n or_o decay_n obedience_n or_o fail_n their_o capacity_n and_o progress_n with_o the_o holy_a accommodation_n of_o himself_o in_o what_o he_o teach_v or_o deliver_v in_o meekness_n in_o vehemency_n in_o tenderness_n in_o sharpness_n in_o severe_a arguing_n and_o pathetical_a expostulation_n with_o all_o other_o way_n and_o mean_v suit_v
idea_n of_o it_o even_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o ministry_n namely_o what_o he_o do_v what_o he_o speak_v how_o on_o all_o occasion_n his_o condescension_n meekness_n and_o authority_n do_v manifest_v themselves_o until_o he_o be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n and_o likeness_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o their_o place_n and_o sphere_n towards_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o principal_a follower_n of_o christ_n and_o who_o do_v most_o lively_o represent_v his_o grace_n and_o wisdom_n unto_o we_o their_o write_n and_o what_o be_v write_v of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v search_v and_o study_v unto_o this_o very_a end_n that_o consider_v how_o they_o behave_v themselves_o in_o all_o instance_n on_o all_o occasion_n in_o their_o testimony_n and_o all_o administration_n of_o the_o truth_n we_o may_v endeavour_v after_o a_o conformity_n unto_o they_o in_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o they_o it_o will_v be_v no_o small_a stay_n and_o guidance_n unto_o we_o if_o on_o all_o occasion_n we_o will_v diligent_o search_v and_o consider_v what_o the_o apostle_n do_v in_o such_o circumstance_n or_o what_o they_o will_v have_v do_v in_o answer_n to_o what_o be_v record_v of_o their_o spirit_n and_o act_n for_o although_o this_o wisdom_n be_v a_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n yet_o as_o we_o now_o consider_v it_o as_o it_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n it_o may_v be_v in_o part_n obtain_v and_o great_o improve_v in_o the_o due_a use_n of_o the_o mean_n which_o be_v subservient_fw-fr thereunto_o provide_v that_o in_o all_o we_o depend_v sole_o on_o god_n for_o the_o give_v of_o it_o who_o have_v also_o prescribe_v these_o mean_n unto_o we_o for_o the_o same_o end_n §_o 8._o 4._o let_v they_o who_o design_n a_o participation_n of_o this_o gift_n take_v heed_n it_o be_v not_o stifle_v with_o such_o vicious_a habit_n of_o mind_n as_o be_v express_o contrary_a unto_o it_o and_o destructive_a of_o it_o such_o be_v self-fulness_n or_o confidence_n hastiness_n of_o spirit_n promptness_n to_o speak_v and_o slowness_n to_o hear_v which_o be_v the_o great_a mean_n which_o make_v many_o abound_v in_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o folly_n to_o be_v wise_a in_o their_o own_o conceit_n and_o contemptible_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o that_o be_v true_o so_o ability_n of_o speech_n in_o time_n and_o season_n be_v a_o especial_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o eminent_o with_o respect_n unto_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o a_o profluency_n of_o speech_n vent_v itself_o on_o all_o occasion_n and_o on_o no_o occasion_n make_v man_n open_v their_o mouth_n wide_a when_o indeed_o they_o shall_v shut_v they_o and_o open_v their_o ear_n and_o to_o pour_v out_o all_o that_o they_o know_v and_o what_o they_o do_v not_o know_v make_v they_o angry_a if_o they_o be_v not_o hear_v and_o impatient_a if_o they_o be_v contradict_v be_v a_o unconquerable_a fortification_n against_o all_o true_a spiritual_a wisdom_n §_o 9_o 5._o let_v those_o who_o will_v be_v sharer_n herein_o follow_v after_o those_o gift_n and_o grace_n which_o do_v accompany_v it_o promote_v it_o and_o be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o such_o be_v humility_n meekness_n patience_n constancy_n with_o boldness_n and_o confidence_n in_o profession_n without_o which_o we_o shall_v be_v fool_n in_o every_o trial._n wisdom_n indeed_o be_v none_o of_o all_o these_o but_o it_o be_v that_o which_o can_v be_v without_o they_o nor_o will_v it_o thrive_v in_o any_o mind_n that_o be_v not_o cultivate_v by_o they_o and_o he_o who_o think_v it_o be_v not_o worth_a his_o pain_n and_o travail_n nor_o that_o it_o will_v quit_v cost_v to_o seek_v after_o this_o spiritual_a wisdom_n by_o a_o constant_a watchfulness_n against_o the_o opposite_a vice_n mention_v and_o attendance_n unto_o those_o concomitant_a duty_n and_o grace_n must_v be_v content_a to_o go_v without_o it_o this_o be_v the_o first_o instance_n give_v by_o our_o apostle_n of_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n to_o one_o be_v give_v by_o the_o spirit_n the_o word_n of_o wisdom_n §_o 10._o to_o another_o the_o word_n of_o knowledge_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o show_v before_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v denote_v the_o thing_n itself_o the_o word_n of_o knowledge_n that_o be_v knowledge_n but_o if_o any_o shall_v suppose_v that_o because_o this_o knowledge_n be_v to_o be_v express_v unto_o the_o church_n for_o its_o edification_n it_o be_v therefore_o call_v a_o word_n of_o knowledge_n as_o a_o word_n of_o exhortation_n or_o a_o word_n of_o consolation_n that_o be_v exhortation_n and_o consolation_n administer_v by_o word_n i_o shall_v not_o contend_v to_o the_o contrary_n it_o be_v knowledge_n that_o be_v the_o gift_n peculiar_o intend_v in_o this_o second_o place_n and_o we_o must_v inquire_v both_o how_o it_o be_v a_o especial_a gift_n and_o of_o what_o sort_n it_o be_v and_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o it_o can_v have_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o especial_a gift_n see_v it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o for_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n speak_v unto_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n we_o know_v that_o we_o all_o have_v knowledge_n 1_o cor._n 8._o 1._o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o also_o add_v that_o this_o knowledge_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o either_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n tend_v unto_o a_o ill_a issue_n or_o be_v very_o apt_a to_o be_v abuse_v thereunto_o for_o say_v he_o knowledge_n puff_v up_o for_o which_o cause_n he_o frequent_o reflect_v upon_o it_o in_o other_o place_n but_o yet_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o be_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n and_o in_o itself_o singular_o useful_a however_o it_o may_v be_v abuse_v as_o the_o best_a thing_n may_v be_v yea_o be_v most_o liable_a thereunto_o the_o knowledge_n mention_v in_o that_o place_n by_o the_o apostle_n which_o he_o ascribe_v in_o common_a unto_o all_o the_o church_n be_v only_a that_o which_o concern_v thing_n sacrifice_v unto_o idol_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v extend_v it_o far_o unto_o a_o understanding_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v in_o the_o community_n of_o believer_n yet_o be_v there_o place_n remain_v for_o a_o eminency_n therein_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o especial_a spiritual_a gift_n and_o as_o to_o what_o he_o add_v about_o knowledge_n puff_v up_o he_o expound_v in_o the_o next_o word_n if_o any_o man_n think_v that_o he_o know_v any_o thing_n he_o know_v nothing_o yet_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v ver._n 2._o it_o be_v not_o man_n knowledge_n but_o the_o vain_a and_o proud_a conceit_n of_o ignorant_a man_n suppose_v themselves_o know_v and_o wise_a that_o so_o puff_v up_o and_o hinder_v edification_n §_o 11._o wherefore_o 1_o by_o this_o word_n of_o knowledge_n not_o that_o degree_n of_o it_o which_o be_v require_v in_o all_o christian_n in_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v intend_v such_o a_o measure_n of_o knowledge_n there_o be_v necessary_a both_o unto_o faith_n and_o confession_n man_n can_v believe_v nothing_o of_o that_o whereof_o they_o know_v nothing_o nor_o can_v they_o confess_v with_o their_o mouth_n what_o they_o apprehend_v not_o in_o their_o mind_n but_o it_o be_v somewhat_o singular_a eminent_a and_o not_o common_a to_o all_o neither_o 2_o do_v that_o eminency_n or_o singularity_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o it_o be_v save_v and_o sanctify_a knowledge_n which_o be_v intend_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o peculiar_a knowledge_n whereby_o god_n shine_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o believer_n with_o a_o spiritual_a save_v insight_n into_o spiritual_a thing_n transform_v the_o mind_n into_o the_o likeness_n of_o they_o i_o have_v at_o large_a elsewhere_o declare_v for_o it_o be_v reckon_v among_o gift_n whereas_o that_o other_o be_v a_o save_v grace_n who_o difference_n have_v be_v declare_v before_o it_o be_v express_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 13._o 2._o by_o understand_v all_o mystery_n and_o all_o knowledge_n that_o be_v have_v a_o understanding_n in_o and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o mystery_n this_o knowledge_n he_o call_v a_o gift_n which_o shall_v vanish_v away_o ver._n 8._o and_o so_o not_o belong_v absolute_o unto_o that_o grace_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o we_o shall_v go_v over_o into_o eternity_n and_o knowledge_n in_o ver._n 2._o be_v take_v for_o the_o thing_n know_v if_o i_o understand_v all_o knowledge_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o all_o mystery_n wherefore_o the_o knowledge_n here_o intend_v be_v such_o a_o peculiar_a and_o especial_a insight_n into_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o whereby_o those_o in_o who_o it_o be_v be_v enable_v to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v other_o thus_o
either_o apostolical_a office_n power_n or_o gift_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o evangelist_n nor_o have_v we_o any_o undoubted_a testimony_n that_o any_o of_o those_o gift_n which_o be_v true_o miraculous_a and_o every_o way_n above_o the_o faculty_n of_o man_n be_v communicate_v unto_o any_o after_o the_o expiration_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o they_o who_o converse_v with_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n or_o those_o who_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o their_o ministry_n it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a but_o that_o god_n may_v on_o some_o occasion_n for_o a_o long_a season_n put_v forth_o his_o power_n in_o some_o miraculous_a operation_n and_o so_o he_o yet_o may_v do_v and_o perhaps_o do_v sometime_o but_o the_o superstition_n and_o folly_n of_o some_o ensue_a age_n invent_v and_o divulge_v innumerable_a miracle_n false_a and_o foolish_a prove_v a_o most_o disadvantageous_a prejudice_n unto_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o mean_n to_o open_v a_o way_n unto_o satan_n to_o impose_v endless_a delusion_n upon_o christian_n for_o as_o true_a and_o real_a miracle_n with_o become_a circumstance_n be_v the_o great_a mean_n that_o win_v and_o reconcile_v a_o regard_n and_o honour_n unto_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n so_o the_o pretence_n of_o such_o as_o either_o be_v absolute_o false_a or_o such_o as_o who_o occasion_n end_n matter_n or_o manner_n be_v unbecoming_a the_o greatness_n and_o holiness_n of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o true_a author_n of_o all_o miraculous_a operation_n be_v the_o great_a dishonour_n unto_o religion_n that_o any_o one_o can_v invent_v but_o although_o all_o these_o gift_n and_o operation_n cease_v in_o some_o respect_n some_o of_o they_o absolute_o and_o some_o of_o they_o as_o to_o the_o immediate_a manner_n of_o communication_n and_o degree_n of_o excellency_n yet_o so_o far_o as_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n be_v concern_v in_o they_o something_o that_o be_v analogous_n unto_o they_o be_v and_o be_v continue_v he_o who_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n give_v also_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o as_o he_o furnish_v the_o former_a with_o extraordinary_a gift_n so_o as_o far_o as_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o like_a kind_n be_v needful_a for_o the_o continual_a edification_n of_o the_o church_n he_o bestow_v it_o on_o the_o latter_a also_o as_o shall_v be_v declare_v §_o 3._o and_o these_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n add_v unto_o his_o grace_n in_o real_a holiness_n be_v the_o glory_n honour_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o old_a man_n have_v but_o deceive_v themselves_o and_o other_o when_o they_o have_v seign_v a_o glory_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o church_n in_o other_o thing_n and_o whatever_o any_o think_v or_o say_v where_o these_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o ornament_n of_o the_o church_n her_o clothing_n of_o wrought_a gold_n and_o her_o raiment_n of_o needlework_n be_v neglect_v and_o lose_v and_o they_o think_v to_o adorn_v she_o with_o the_o meritricious_a paint_n of_o pompous_a ceremony_n with_o outward_a grandeur_n wealth_n and_o power_n she_o be_v utter_o fall_v from_o her_o chastity_n purity_n and_o integrity_n but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o many_o church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v therefore_o worldly_a and_o carnal_a not_o spiritual_a or_o evangelical_n power_n and_o force_v and_o wealth_n the_o gift_n in_o this_o case_n of_o another_o spirit_n under_o various_a pretence_n and_o name_n be_v their_o life_n and_o glory_n indeed_o their_o death_n and_o shame_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o enjoy_v earthly_a possession_n which_o they_o do_v attain_v by_o any_o commendable_a way_n among_o other_o men._n neither_o be_v they_o require_v unless_o in_o extraordinary_a case_n to_o part_v with_o the_o right_n and_o use_v of_o their_o temporal_a good_n because_o they_o be_v so_o minister_n of_o christ_n though_o those_o who_o be_v so_o indeed_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o use_v they_o in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n unto_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o gospel_n beyond_o other_o men._n neither_o shall_v i_o ever_o question_n that_o wherein_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o express_v namely_o that_o those_o who_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n shall_v have_v a_o convenient_a yea_o a_o honourable_a subsistence_n provide_v for_o they_o according_a to_o the_o best_a ability_n of_o the_o church_n for_o their_o work_n be_v sake_n it_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n also_o grant_v that_o the_o lord_n christ_n have_v commit_v all_o that_o power_n which_o with_o respect_v unto_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n he_o will_v exercise_v in_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o church_n itself_o as_o it_o can_v without_o a_o virtual_a renunciation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n as_o the_o head_n and_o king_n of_o the_o church_n be_v suppose_v that_o this_o power_n be_v any_o other_o but_o spiritual_a over_o the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n of_o men._n and_o therefore_o can_v this_o power_n be_v exercise_v or_o be_v any_o way_n make_v effectual_a but_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n we_o treat_v of_o but_o for_o man_n to_o turn_v this_o spiritual_a power_n to_o be_v exercise_v only_o by_o virtue_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n into_o a_o external_a coercive_a power_n over_o the_o person_n body_n liberty_n and_o life_n of_o man_n to_o be_v exercise_v by_o law-court_n in_o way_n form_n manner_n utter_o foreign_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o all_o evangelical_n administration_n without_o the_o least_o pretence_n unto_o or_o appearance_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therein_o yea_o and_o by_o person_n by_o who_o they_o be_v hate_v and_o deride_v act_v with_o pride_n scorn_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o over_o they_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o the_o true_a nature_n and_o use_v of_o all_o gospel_n administration_n this_o be_v to_o disorder_v the_o church_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o house_n of_o spiritual_a worship_n in_o some_o instance_n to_o turn_v it_o into_o a_o den_n of_o thief_n where_o hereunto_o there_o be_v moreover_o annex_v earthly_a revenue_n contain_v all_o food_n and_o fuel_n of_o corrupt_a lust_n with_o all_o thing_n satisfactory_a unto_o the_o mind_n of_o worldly_a sensual_a man_n as_o a_o meet_a reward_n of_o these_o carnal_a administration_n as_o it_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o all_o use_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v exclude_v and_o the_o church_n be_v bring_v into_o extreme_a desolation_n and_o although_o these_o thing_n be_v be_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n as_o darkness_n to_o light_n yet_o the_o world_n for_o many_o reason_n not_o now_o to_o be_v insist_v on_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v deceive_v in_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v general_o apprehend_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o pernicious_a unto_o the_o church_n so_o just_o to_o be_v watch_v against_o and_o root_v out_o as_o a_o dislike_n of_o their_o horrible_a apostasy_n in_o the_o corrupt_a depravation_n of_o all_o evangelical_n administration_n this_o be_v not_o the_o state_n this_o be_v not_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n their_o life_n consist_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o their_o glory_n in_o his_o gift_n none_o of_o their_o leader_n once_o dream_v of_o that_o new_a kind_n of_o beauty_n glory_n and_o power_n consist_v in_o numberless_a superstitious_a ceremony_n instead_o of_o religious_a worship_n worldly_a grandeur_n instead_o of_o humility_n and_o self-denial_n and_o open_a tyranny_n over_o the_o conscience_n and_o person_n of_o man_n in_o the_o room_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n effectual_a in_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n §_o 4._o there_o be_v many_o sore_a division_n at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o world_n among_o and_o between_o the_o professor_n of_o christian_a religion_n both_o about_o the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o also_o the_o discipline_n thereof_o that_o these_o division_n be_v evil_a in_o themselves_o and_o the_o cause_n of_o great_a evil_n hindrance_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o all_o the_o effect_n thereof_o in_o the_o world_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n doubtless_o to_o be_v great_o lament_v that_o the_o generality_n of_o they_o who_o be_v call_v christian_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o great_a rule_n of_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n he_o who_o do_v not_o pray_v always_o who_o be_v not_o ready_a with_o his_o utmost_a endeavour_n to_o remedy_v this_o evil_a to_o remove_v this_o great_a obstruction_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v scarce_o
worthy_a the_o name_n of_o a_o christian._n the_o common_a way_n insist_v on_o unto_o this_o end_n be_v that_o those_o who_o have_v most_o force_v and_o power_n shall_v set_v up_o standard_n and_o measure_n of_o agreement_n compel_v other_o by_o all_o way_n of_o severity_n and_o violence_n to_o a_o compliance_n therewith_o judge_v they_o the_o high_a offender_n who_o shall_v refuse_v so_o to_o do_v because_o the_o determine_n and_o settle_v of_o this_o matter_n be_v commit_v unto_o they_o this_o be_v the_o way_n of_o antichrist_n and_o those_o who_o follow_v he_o therein_o other_o with_o more_o moderation_n and_o wisdom_n but_o with_o as_o little_a success_n do_v or_o have_v endeavour_v the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o party_n at_o variance_n some_o more_o or_o all_o of_o they_o by_o certain_a middle_a way_n of_o mutual_a condescension_n which_o they_o have_v find_v out_o some_o thing_n they_o blame_v and_o some_o thing_n they_o commend_v in_o all_o some_o thing_n they_o will_v have_v they_o do_v and_o some_o thing_n omit_v all_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o peace_n and_o love_n and_o this_o design_n carry_v with_o it_o so_o fair_a and_o pleadable_a a_o pretence_n that_o those_o who_o be_v once_o engage_v in_o it_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v that_o they_o alone_o be_v the_o true_a lover_n of_o christianity_n in_o general_n the_o only_a sober_a and_o indifferent_a person_n fit_a to_o umpire_n all_o the_o difference_n in_o the_o world_n in_o a_o few_o proposition_n which_o they_o have_v frame_v and_o so_o wed_v be_v some_o wise_a and_o holy_a man_n unto_o these_o apprehension_n of_o reconcile_a christian_n by_o their_o conceive_a method_n that_o no_o experience_n of_o endless_a disappointment_n and_o of_o increase_a new_a difference_n and_o digladiation_n of_o form_v new_a party_n of_o revive_v old_a animosiry_n all_o which_o roll_n in_o upon_o they_o continual_o will_v discourage_v they_o in_o their_o design_n what_o then_o will_v some_o say_v will_v you_o have_v these_o division_n and_o difference_n that_o be_v among_o we_o continue_v and_o perpetuate_v when_o you_o acknowledge_v they_o so_o evil_a and_o pernicious_a i_o say_v god_n forbid_v yea_o we_o pray_v for_o and_o always_o will_v endeavour_v their_o removal_n and_o take_v away_o but_o yet_o this_o i_o say_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n whether_o man_n will_v hear_v or_o they_o will_v forbear_v there_o be_v but_o one_o way_n of_o effect_v this_o so_o bless_a and_o desirable_a a_o work_n which_o until_o it_o be_v engage_v in_o let_v man_n talk_v what_o they_o please_v of_o reconciliation_n the_o worst_a of_o man_n will_v be_v revile_v and_o persecute_v those_o who_o be_v better_a than_o themselves_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o this_o way_n be_v that_o all_o church_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o reduce_v themselves_o unto_o the_o primitive_a pattern_n let_v we_o all_o but_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o life_n and_o spirit_n of_o those_o church_n wherein_o their_o honour_n glory_n and_o order_n do_v consist_v make_v it_o our_o joint_a design_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherein_o they_o walk_v in_o the_o exercise_n and_o use_v of_o those_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o and_o give_v virtue_n unto_o all_o their_o administration_n renounce_v whatever_o be_v foreign_a unto_o and_o inconsistent_a with_o these_o thing_n and_o that_o grace_n and_o unity_n will_v quick_o enter_v into_o professor_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o they_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v here_o only_o occasional_o mention_v and_o be_v not_o far_o to_o be_v pursue_v §_o 5._o these_o spiritual_a gift_n the_o apostle_n call_v the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v heb._n 6._o 4_o 5._o that_o be_v those_o effectual_a powerful_a principle_n and_o operation_n which_o peculiar_o belong_v unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereby_o they_o be_v to_o be_v set_v up_o plant_v advance_v and_o propagate_v in_o the_o world_n the_o lord_n christ_n come_v and_o wrought_v out_o the_o mighty_a work_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o thereon_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o his_o church_n on_o himself_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o he_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n concern_v himself_o and_o his_o work_n he_o preach_v and_o cause_v to_o be_v preach_v a_o doctrine_n that_o be_v oppose_v by_o all_o the_o world_n because_o of_o its_o truth_n mystery_n and_o holiness_n yet_o be_v it_o the_o design_n of_o god_n to_o break_v through_o all_o those_o opposition_n to_o cause_v this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v receive_v and_o submit_v unto_o and_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v believe_v in_o unto_o the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n in_o the_o world_n now_o this_o be_v a_o work_n that_o can_v not_o be_v wrought_v without_o the_o put_v forth_o and_o exercise_v of_o mighty_a power_n concern_v which_o nothing_o remain_v to_o be_v inquire_v into_o but_o of_o what_o sort_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v now_o the_o conquest_n that_o the_o lord_n christ_n aim_v at_o be_v spiritual_a over_o the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n the_o enemy_n he_o have_v to_o conflict_n withal_o be_v spiritual_a even_a principality_n and_o power_n and_o spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o high_a place_n the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n the_o prince_n of_o it_o which_o rule_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v to_o erect_v be_v spiritual_a and_o not_o of_o this_o world_n all_o the_o law_n and_o rule_n of_o it_o with_o their_o administration_n and_o end_n be_v spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a the_o gospel_n that_o be_v to_o be_v propagate_v be_v a_o doctrine_n not_o concern_v this_o world_n nor_o the_o thing_n of_o it_o nor_o of_o any_o thing_n natural_a or_o political_a but_o as_o they_o be_v mere_o subordinate_a unto_o other_o end_n but_o heavenly_a and_o mysterious_a direct_v man_n only_o in_o a_o tendency_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o eternal_a enjoyment_n of_o he_o hereon_o it_o will_v easy_o appear_v what_o kind_n of_o power_n be_v necessary_a unto_o this_o work_n and_o for_o the_o attain_n of_o these_o ends._n he_o that_o at_o the_o speak_n of_o one_o word_n can_v have_v engage_v more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n in_o his_o work_n and_o unto_o his_o assistance_n can_v have_v easy_o by_o outward_a force_n and_o arm_n have_v subdue_v the_o whole_a world_n into_o a_o external_a observance_n of_o he_o and_o his_o command_n and_o thereon_o have_v rule_v man_n at_o his_o pleasure_n as_o this_o he_o can_v have_v do_v and_o may_v do_v when_o he_o please_v so_o if_o he_o have_v do_v it_o it_o have_v tend_v nothing_o unto_o the_o end_n which_o he_o design_v he_o may_v indeed_o have_v have_v a_o glorious_a empire_n in_o the_o world_n comprehensive_a of_o all_o dominion_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o can_v be_v on_o the_o earth_n but_o yet_o it_o will_v have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o nature_n with_o that_o which_o nero_n have_v the_o great_a monster_n of_o villainy_n in_o nature_n neither_o have_v it_o be_v any_o great_a matter_n for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o have_v outdo_v the_o roman_n or_o the_o turk_n or_o such_o like_a conspiracy_n of_o wicked_a oppressor_n and_o all_o those_o who_o yet_o think_v meet_v to_o use_v external_a force_n over_o the_o person_n life_n and_o body_n of_o man_n in_o order_n unto_o the_o reduce_n of_o they_o unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o gospel_n do_v put_v the_o great_a dishonour_n upon_o he_o imaginable_a and_o change_v the_o whole_a nature_n of_o his_o design_n and_o kingdom_n he_o will_v neither_o own_v nor_o accept_v of_o any_o subject_a but_o who_o obedience_n be_v a_o free_a act_n of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o who_o be_v so_o make_v willing_a by_o himself_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o power_n his_o design_n and_o his_o only_a design_n in_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v to_o erect_v a_o kingdom_n throne_n and_o rule_n in_o the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n to_o have_v a_o obedience_n from_o they_o in_o faith_n love_n and_o spiritual_a delight_n proceed_v from_o their_o own_o choice_n understanding_n will_n and_o affection_n a_o obedience_n that_o shall_v be_v internal_a spiritual_a mystical_a heavenly_a with_o respect_n sole_o unto_o thing_n unseen_a and_o eternal_a wherein_o himself_o and_o his_o law_n shall_v be_v infinite_o prefer_v before_o all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o consideration_n now_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n that_o all_o earthly_a power_n and_o empire_n can_v never_o desire_v design_n or_o put_v a_o hand_n unto_o and_o that_o which_o render_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o another_o nature_n so_o more_o excellent_a and_o better_a than_o all_o earthly_a kingdom_n as_o
primitive_a pattern_n that_o the_o circumstance_n of_o thing_n be_v capable_a of_o 4._o the_o lord_n christ_n continue_v his_o bestow_n of_o this_o gift_n by_o the_o solemn_a ordinance_n of_o set_v apart_o those_o who_o be_v call_v in_o the_o manner_n declare_v by_o fast_v and_o prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n act_n 14._o 23._o chap._n 13._o 2._o 1_o tim._n 4._o 14._o by_o these_o mean_n i_o say_v do_v the_o lord_n christ_n continue_v to_o declare_v that_o he_o account_v man_n faithful_a and_o put_v they_o into_o the_o ministry_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o tim._n 1._o 12._o §_o 12._o there_o be_v yet_o remain_v sundry_a thing_n in_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o we_o now_o insist_v on_o that_o declare_v the_o eminency_n of_o this_o gift_n of_o christ_n which_o may_v yet_o be_v far_o brief_o consider_v as_o 6_o the_o end_n why_o it_o be_v bestow_v and_o this_o be_v express_v 1_o positiveiy_n as_o to_o the_o good_a and_o advantage_n of_o the_o church_n thereby_o ver_fw-la 12._o 2_o negative_o as_o to_o its_o prohibition_n and_o hindrance_n of_o evil_a ver_fw-la 14._o in_o the_o end_n of_o it_o as_o positive_o express_v three_o thing_n may_v be_v consider_v 1_o that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v for_o the_o gather_n of_o the_o saint_n into_o complete_a church-order_n the_o subject-matter_n of_o this_o part_n of_o their_o duty_n be_v the_o saint_n that_o be_v by_o call_v and_o profession_n such_o as_o be_v all_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ._n and_o that_o which_o be_v effect_v towards_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d their_o coagmentation_n joint_v or_o compact_v into_o order_n so_o the_o word_n signify_v gal._n 6._o 1._o and_o this_o effect_n be_v here_o declare_v ver_fw-la 16._o it_o be_v true_a the_o saint_n mention_v may_v come_v together_o into_o some_o initial_a church-order_n by_o their_o consent_n and_o agreement_n to_o walk_v together_o in_o all_o the_o way_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o obedience_n unto_o all_o his_o institution_n and_o so_o become_v a_o church_n essential_o before_o they_o have_v any_o ordinary_a pastor_n or_o teacher_n either_o by_o the_o conduct_n of_o extraordinary_a officer_n as_o at_o first_o or_o through_o obedience_n unto_o their_o word_n whence_o elder_n be_v ordain_v among_o those_o who_o be_v in_o church-state_n that_o be_v thus_o far_o before_o act_v 14._o 23._o but_o they_o can_v come_v to_o that_o perfection_n and_o compleatness_n which_o be_v design_v unto_o they_o that_o which_o render_v a_o church_n complete_o organical_a the_o proper_a seat_n and_o subject_n of_o all_o gospel-worship_n and_o ordinance_n be_v this_o gift_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o ministry_n but_o it_o may_v be_v ask_v whether_o a_o church_n before_o it_o come_v unto_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o compleatness_n before_o it_o have_v any_o minister_n in_o office_n or_o have_v by_o any_o mean_v lose_v the_o ministry_n among_o they_o may_v not_o delegate_v and_o appoint_v some_o one_o or_o more_o from_o among_o themselves_o for_o to_o administer_v all_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o they_o and_o unto_o they_o and_o by_o that_o mean_n make_v up_o their_o own_o perfection_n §_o 13._o second_o the_o church_n be_v so_o complete_v these_o officer_n be_v give_v unto_o it_o for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n this_o expression_n be_v comprehensive_a and_o the_o particular_n include_v in_o it_o be_v not_o in_o this_o place_n to_o be_v inquire_v into_o it_o may_v suffice_v unto_o our_o present_a purpose_n to_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v a_o work_n not_o a_o preferment_n and_o a_o work_n they_o shall_v find_v it_o who_o design_n to_o give_v up_o a_o comfortable_a account_n of_o what_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v usual_o observe_v that_o all_o the_o word_n whereby_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n do_v denote_v a_o peculiar_a industrious_a kind_n of_o labour_n though_o some_o have_v son_n out_o way_n of_o honour_n and_o ease_n to_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o and_o both_o these_o be_v direct_v unto_o one_o general_a issue_n it_o be_v all_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unto_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n not_o to_o insist_v on_o the_o metaphor_n that_o be_v in_o this_o expression_n the_o excellency_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v declare_v in_o that_o the_o object_n of_o its_o duty_n and_o work_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o it_o be_v end_n the_o edification_n of_o this_o body_n or_o its_o increase_n in_o faith_n and_o obedience_n in_o all_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n until_o it_o come_v unto_o conformity_n unto_o he_o and_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o and_o a_o ministry_n which_o have_v not_o this_o object_n and_o end_n be_v not_o of_o the_o give_v or_o grant_v of_o christ._n §_o 14._o the_o end_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v express_v negative_o or_o with_o respect_n unto_o the_o evil_n which_o it_o be_v ordain_v for_o our_o deliverance_n from_o ver_fw-la 14._o 1_o the_o evil_a which_o we_o be_v hereby_o deliver_v from_o be_v the_o danger_n of_o be_v pernicious_o and_o destructive_o deceive_v by_o false_a doctrine_n error_n and_o heresy_n which_o then_o begin_v and_o have_v ever_o since_o in_o all_o age_n continue_v to_o infest_v the_o church_n of_o god_n these_o the_o apostle_n describe_v 1_o from_o the_o design_n of_o their_o author_n which_o be_v to_o deceive_v 2_o their_o diligence_n in_o that_o design_n they_o lay_v in_o wait_n to_o accomplish_v it_o 3_o the_o mean_n they_o use_v to_o compass_v their_o end_n which_o be_v slight_v and_o cunning_a craftiness_n manage_v sometime_o with_o impetuous_a violence_n and_o thence_o call_v a_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o 2_o the_o mean_n hereof_o be_v our_o deliverance_n out_o of_o a_o childlike_a state_n accompanied_z with_o 1_o weakness_n 2_o instability_n and_o 3_o wilfulness_n and_o sad_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o those_o church_n which_o either_o have_v such_o minister_n as_o will_n themselves_o toss_v they_o up_o and_o down_o by_o false_a and_o pernicious_a doctrine_n or_o be_v not_o able_a by_o sound_a instruction_n to_o deliver_v they_o from_o such_o a_o condition_n of_o weakness_n and_o instabi'ity_n as_o wherein_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o preserve_v themselves_o from_o be_v in_o these_o thing_n impose_v on_o by_o the_o cunning_n slight_v of_o man_n that_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v and_o as_o this_o ministry_n be_v always_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n ver_fw-la 13._o so_o it_o be_v the_o great_a mean_n of_o influence_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o every_o member_n of_o it_o into_o a_o due_a discharge_n of_o their_o duty_n unto_o their_o edification_n in_o love_n ver_fw-la 15_o 16._o §_o 15._o design_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n bestow_v on_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v thus_o far_o divert_v into_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o ministry_n itself_o as_o it_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v shut_v it_o up_o with_o a_o few_o corollary_n as_o 1_o where_o there_o be_v any_o office_n erect_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v not_o in_o particular_a of_o the_o gift_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o nullity_n in_o the_o whole_a office_n and_o in_o all_o administration_n by_o virtue_n of_o it_o 2_o where_o the_o office_n be_v appoint_v but_o gift_n be_v not_o communicate_v unto_o the_o person_n call_v unto_o it_o there_o be_v a_o nullity_n as_o to_o his_o person_n and_o a_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n 3_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o church_n to_o look_v on_o the_o ministry_n as_o a_o eminent_a grant_n of_o christ_n with_o valuation_n thankfulness_n and_o improvement_n 4_o those_o who_o be_v call_v unto_o this_o office_n in_o due_a order_n labour_v to_o approve_v themselves_o as_o a_o gift_n of_o christ_n which_o it_o be_v a_o shameless_a impudence_n for_o some_o to_o own_o who_o go_v under_o that_o name_n 5_o this_o they_o may_v do_v in_o labour_v to_o be_v furnish_v 1_o with_o gracious_a qualification_n 2_o useful_a endowment_n 3_o diligence_n and_o laborious_a travail_n in_o this_o work_n 4_o by_o a_o exemplary_a conversation_n in_o 1._o love_n 2._o meekness_n 3._o self-denial_n 4._o readiness_n for_o the_o cross_n etc._n etc._n chap._n vii_o of_o spiritual_a gift_n enable_v the_o ministry_n to_o the_o exercise_n and_o discharge_v of_o their_o trust_n and_o office_n §_o 1._o unto_o the_o ministry_n so_o give_v unto_o the_o church_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v spiritual_a gift_n enable_v they_o unto_o the_o exercise_n and_o discharge_v of_o the_o power_n trust_v and_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o now_o although_o i_o be_o not_o thorough_o satisfy_v what_o man_n will_v grant_v or_o
be_v that_o mean_n whereby_o they_o shall_v be_v certain_o execute_v now_o this_o must_v be_v either_o some_o work_n of_o god_n or_o man._n if_o it_o be_v of_o man_n and_o it_o consist_v of_o their_o will_n and_o obedience_n then_o that_o which_o be_v say_v amount_n hereunto_o namely_o that_o where_o man_n have_v once_o receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o profess_a subjection_n thereunto_o they_o will_v infallible_o abide_v therein_o in_o a_o succession_n from_o one_o generation_n unto_o another_o but_o beside_o that_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o what_o so_o depend_v on_o the_o will_n of_o man_n can_v have_v no_o more_o certainty_n than_o the_o undetermined_a will_n of_o man_n can_v give_v security_n of_o which_o indeed_o be_v none_o at_o all_o so_o there_o be_v confess_v instance_n without_o number_n of_o such_o person_n and_o place_n as_o have_v lose_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o profession_n thereof_o and_o what_o have_v fall_v out_o in_o one_o place_n may_v do_v so_o in_o another_o and_o consequent_o in_o all_o place_n where_o the_o reason_n and_o cause_n of_o thing_n be_v the_o same_o on_o this_o supposition_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o security_n that_o the_o promise_v mention_v shall_v be_v infallible_o accomplish_v wherefore_o the_o event_n must_v depend_v on_o some_o work_n of_o god_n and_o christ._n now_o this_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o dispensation_n and_o communication_n of_o the_o spirit_n hereon_o alone_o do_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n depend_v and_o whereas_o the_o church_n fall_v under_o a_o double_a consideration_n namely_o of_o its_o internal_a and_o external_a form_n of_o its_o internal_a spiritual_a union_n with_o christ_n and_o its_o outward_a profession_n of_o obedience_n unto_o he_o the_o call_v gather_v preservation_n and_o edification_n of_o it_o in_o both_o respect_n belong_v unto_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o first_o he_o do_v as_o have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a by_o his_o communicate_v effectual_a save_v grace_n unto_o the_o elect_n the_o latter_a by_o the_o communication_n of_o gift_n unto_o the_o guide_n ruler_n officer_n and_o minister_n of_o it_o with_o all_o its_o member_n according_a unto_o its_o place_n and_o capacity_n suppose_v then_o his_o communication_n of_o internal_a save_v grace_n to_o cease_v and_o the_o church_n must_v absolute_o cease_v as_o to_o its_o internal_a form_n for_o we_o be_v unite_v unto_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o our_o mystical_a head_n by_o the_o spirit_n the_o one_o and_o selfsame_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o they_o that_o do_v believe_v union_n unto_o christ_n without_o save_v grace_n or_o save_v grace_n without_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v stranger_n unto_o the_o gospel_n and_o christian_a religion_n so_o be_v it_o to_o have_v a_o church_n that_o be_v holy_a and_o catholic_n which_o be_v not_o unite_v unto_o christ_n as_o a_o mystical_a head_n wherefore_o the_o very_a be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o unto_o its_o internal_a form_n depend_v on_o the_o spirit_n in_o his_o dispensation_n of_o grace_n which_o if_o you_o suppose_v a_o intercision_n of_o the_o church_n must_v cease_v it_o have_v the_o same_o dependence_n on_o he_o as_o to_o its_o outward_a form_n and_o profession_n upon_o his_o communication_n of_o gift_n for_o no_o man_n can_v call_v jesus_n lord_n or_o profess_v subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o he_o in_o a_o due_a manner_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 3._o suppose_v this_o work_n of_o he_o to_o cease_v and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o profess_v church_n let_v man_n mould_n and_o cast_v themselves_o into_o what_o order_n and_o form_n they_o please_v and_o let_v they_o pretend_v that_o their_o right_n and_o title_n unto_o their_o church_n power_n and_o station_n be_v derive_v unto_o they_o from_o their_o progenitor_n or_o predecessor_n if_o they_o be_v not_o furnish_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o enable_v their_o guide_n unto_o gospel_n administration_n they_o be_v no_o orderly_a gospel_n church_n wherefore_o §_o 7._o 6thly_a the_o communication_n of_o such_o gift_n unto_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n be_v plain_o assert_v in_o sundry_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n some_o whereof_o may_v be_v brief_o consider_v the_o whole_a nature_n of_o this_o work_n be_v declare_v in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o talent_n matth._n 25._o from_o ver_fw-la 13._o to_o 31._o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n unto_o his_o come_n again_o unto_o judgement_n that_o be_v in_o its_o whole_a course_n on_o the_o earth_n be_v represent_v in_o this_o parable_n in_o this_o season_n he_o have_v servant_n who_o he_o intru_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o care_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o may_v in_o their_o several_a generation_n place_n and_o circumstance_n be_v enable_v hereunto_o he_o give_v they_o in_o various_a distribution_n talent_n to_o trade_n withal_o the_o least_o whereof_o be_v sufficient_a to_o encourage_v they_o who_o receive_v they_o unto_o their_o use_n and_o exercise_n the_o trade_n they_o have_v to_o drive_v be_v that_o of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o gospel_n its_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o ordinance_n to_o other_o talent_n be_v ability_n to_o trade_n which_o may_v also_o comprise_v opportunity_n and_o other_o advantage_n but_o ability_n be_v chief_o intend_v these_o be_v the_o gift_n where_o of_o we_o speak_v nor_o do_v it_o ever_o enter_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o any_o to_o apprehend_v otherwise_o of_o they_o and_o they_o be_v ability_n which_o christ_n as_o the_o king_n and_o head_n of_o his_o church_n give_v unto_o man_n in_o a_o especial_a manner_n as_o they_o be_v employ_v under_o he_o in_o the_o service_n of_o his_o house_n and_o work_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o servant_n mention_v be_v such_o as_o be_v call_v appoint_v and_o employ_v in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o house_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v all_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o first_o to_o last_o and_o their_o talent_n be_v the_o gift_n which_o he_o endow_v they_o withal_o by_o his_o own_o immediate_a power_n and_o authority_n for_o their_o work_n and_o hence_o these_o three_o thing_n follow_v 1_o that_o wherever_o there_o be_v a_o ministry_n that_o the_o lord_n christ_n set_v up_o appoint_v or_o ow_v he_o furnish_v all_o those_o who_o he_o employ_v therein_o with_o gift_n and_o ability_n suitable_a to_o their_o work_n which_o he_o do_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n he_o will_v never_o fail_v to_o own_o his_o institution_n with_o gracious_a supply_n to_o render_v they_o effectual_a 2_o that_o where_o any_o have_v not_o receive_v talent_n to_o trade_n withal_o it_o be_v the_o high_a presumption_n in_o they_o and_o cast_v the_o great_a dishonour_n on_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o though_o he_o require_v work_n where_o he_o give_v no_o strength_n or_o trade_n where_o he_o give_v no_o stock_n for_o any_o one_o to_o undertake_v the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n where_o the_o lord_n christ_n give_v no_o gift_n he_o have_v no_o work_n to_o do_v he_o will_v require_v of_o none_o any_o especial_a duty_n where_o he_o do_v not_o give_v a_o especial_a ability_n and_o for_o any_o to_o think_v themselves_o meet_a for_o this_o work_n and_o service_n in_o the_o strength_n of_o their_o own_o natural_a part_n and_o endowment_n however_o acquire_v be_v to_o despise_v both_o his_o authority_n and_o his_o work_n 3_o for_o those_o who_o have_v receive_v of_o these_o talent_n either_o not_o to_o trade_n at_o all_o or_o to_o pretend_v the_o manage_n of_o their_o trade_n on_o another_o stock_n that_o be_v either_o not_o sedulous_o and_o due_o to_o exercise_n their_o ministerial_a gift_n or_o to_o discharge_v their_o ministry_n by_o other_o help_n and_o mean_n be_v to_o set_v up_o their_o own_o wisdom_n in_o opposition_n unto_o he_o and_o his_o authority_n in_o brief_a that_o which_o the_o whole_a parable_n teach_v be_v that_o wherever_o there_o be_v a_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n that_o christ_n ow_v or_o regard_v as_o use_v and_o employ_v by_o he_o there_o person_n be_v furnish_v with_o spiritual_a gift_n from_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n enable_v they_o unto_o the_o discharge_n of_o that_o ministry_n and_o where_o there_o be_v no_o such_o spiritual_a gift_n dispense_v by_o he_o there_o be_v no_o ministry_n that_o he_o either_o accept_v or_o approve_v §_o 8._o rome_n 12._o 1_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o as_o we_o have_v many_o member_n in_o one_o body_n and_o all_o member_n have_v not_o the_o same_o office_n so_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n and_o every_o one_o member_n one_o of_o another_o have_v therefore_o gift_n differ_v according_a to_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o whether_o
prophecy_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v indifferent_a as_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n whether_o the_o apostle_n treat_v here_o of_o office_n or_o of_o duty_n only_o the_o thing_n ensue_v which_o be_v plain_a and_o obvious_a in_o the_o text_n be_v sufficient_a unto_o the_o confirmation_n of_o what_o we_o plead_v for_o 1_o it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a state_n of_o the_o church_n its_o continuance_n be_v plant_v its_o preservation_n and_o edification_n that_o the_o apostle_n discourse_v about_o wherefore_o what_o he_o speak_v be_v necessary_a unto_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n and_o condition_n to_o suppose_v a_o church_n devoid_a of_o the_o gift_n here_o mention_v be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a nature_n and_o end_n of_o a_o gospel_n church_n 2_o that_o the_o principle_n of_o all_o administration_n in_o the_o church-state_n describe_v be_v gift_n receive_v from_o jesus_n christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n for_o declare_v the_o way_n whereby_o the_o church_n may_v be_v edify_v he_o lave_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o in_o this_o that_o to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v grace_n give_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ._n for_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v those_o unto_o who_o he_o speak_v to_o attend_v unto_o those_o duty_n whereby_o the_o church_n may_v be_v edify_v and_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o gift_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v all_o the_o whole_a duty_n of_o any_o one_o in_o the_o church_n lie_v in_o this_o that_o he_o act_n according_a to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o and_o what_o these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v as_o also_o by_o who_o they_o be_v bestow_v have_v be_v already_o full_o declare_v 3._o that_o these_o gift_n give_v not_o only_a ability_n for_o duty_n but_o rule_n and_o measure_n unto_o all_o work_n of_o service_n that_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o church_n every_o one_o be_v to_o act_v therein_o according_a to_o his_o gift_n and_o no_o otherwise_o to_o say_v that_o this_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v now_o cease_v and_o that_o another_o state_n be_v introduce_v wherein_o all_o gospel_n administration_n may_v be_v manage_v without_o spiritual_a gift_n or_o not_o by_o virtue_n of_o they_o be_v to_o say_v that_o which_o the_o facto_fw-la be_v true_a in_o most_o place_n but_o whether_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o overthrow_v thereby_o be_v leave_v unto_o consideration_n 1_o pet._n 4._o 10_o 11._o be_v a_o parallel_a testimony_n hereunto_o and_o many_o other_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n may_v be_v plead_v together_o with_o that_o which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o whole_a discourse_n ephes._n 4._o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o etc._n etc._n only_o let_v it_o be_v remember_v that_o in_o this_o whole_a discourse_n by_o gift_n i_o do_v understand_v those_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o spiritual_a largess_n which_o be_v neither_o absolute_o natural_a endowment_n nor_o attainable_a by_o our_o own_o industry_n and_o diligence_n §_o 9_o 7thly_a these_o gift_n as_o they_o be_v bestow_v unto_o that_o end_n so_o they_o be_v indispensible_o necessary_a unto_o gospel_n administration_n for_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v they_o be_v spiritual_a and_o not_o legal_a or_o carnal_a and_o spiritual_a administration_n can_v be_v exercise_v in_o a_o due_a manner_n without_o spiritual_a gift_n yea_o one_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v spiritual_a and_o so_o call_v be_v because_o they_o can_v be_v perform_v without_o the_o aid_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o and_o by_o these_o gift_n of_o he_o have_v the_o lord_n christ_n appoint_v administration_n of_o another_o nature_n such_o as_o be_v every_o way_n suit_v unto_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n and_o to_o be_v exercise_v by_o the_o power_n thereof_o there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o these_o spiritual_a gift_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n and_o will_v both_o guide_v and_o act_v he_o therein_o and_o whereas_o these_o admistration_n be_v in_o their_o nature_n use_v signification_n and_o efficacy_n spiritual_n it_o be_v by_o spiritual_a gift_n alone_o that_o they_o may_v be_v manage_v hence_o these_o thing_n do_v live_v and_o die_v together_o where_o the_o one_o be_v not_o there_o neither_o will_v the_o other_o be_v thus_o when_o many_o perhaps_o the_o most_o who_o be_v outward_o call_v unto_o office_n in_o the_o church_n begin_v to_o be_v carnal_a in_o their_o heart_n and_o life_n and_o to_o neglect_v the_o use_n of_o these_o gift_n neither_o apply_v themselves_o unto_o the_o attain_n of_o they_o nor_o endeavour_v to_o excite_v or_o increase_v what_o they_o have_v receive_v by_o diligence_n or_o constant_a exercise_n refuse_v to_o trade_n with_o the_o talon_n commit_v unto_o they_o they_o quick_o begin_v to_o wax_v weary_a of_o spiritual_a administration_n also_o hereon_o in_o compliance_n with_o many_o corrupt_a affection_n they_o betake_v themselves_o unto_o a_o outward_a carnal_a ceremonious_a worship_n and_o administration_n of_o ordinance_n which_o they_o may_v discharge_v and_o perform_v without_o the_o least_o aid_n or_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o supply_v of_o spiritual_a gift_n so_o in_o the_o neglect_n of_o these_o gift_n and_o the_o loss_n of_o they_o which_o ensue_v thereon_o lay_v the_o begin_n of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o to_o its_o outward_a profession_n which_o be_v quick_o complete_v by_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o it_o lose_v both_o truth_n and_o holiness_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o outward_a form_n and_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o its_o visible_a profession_n depend_v on_o the_o receipt_n and_o use_n of_o they_o on_o their_o decay_n therefore_o the_o church_n must_v decay_v as_o to_o its_o profession_n and_o in_o their_o loss_n be_v its_o ruin_n and_o we_o have_v a_o instance_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o various_a extravagant_a and_o endless_a invention_n the_o mind_n of_o man_n will_v put_v they_o upon_o to_o keep_v up_o a_o show_n of_o worship_n when_o by_o the_o loss_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n spiritual_a administration_n be_v lose_v also_o this_o be_v that_o which_o their_o innumerable_a form_n modes_n set_v of_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n season_n of_o worship_n be_v invent_v to_o supply_v but_o to_o no_o purpose_n at_o all_o but_o only_o the_o aggravation_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o folly_n §_o 10._o in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o plead_v the_o event_n even_o in_o the_o day_n wherein_o we_o live_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v continue_v to_o dispense_v spiritual_a gift_n for_o gospel_n administration_n in_o great_a variety_n unto_o those_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o be_v call_v unto_o their_o office_n according_a unto_o his_o mind_n and_o will._n the_o opposition_n that_o be_v make_v hereunto_o by_o profane_a scoffer_n be_v not_o to_o be_v value_v the_o experience_n of_o those_o who_o be_v humble_a and_o wise_a who_o fear_v god_n do_v inquire_v into_o those_o thing_n be_v appeal_v unto_o have_v they_o not_o a_o experiment_n of_o this_o administration_n do_v they_o not_o find_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n himself_o by_o his_o various_a gift_n in_o they_o by_o who_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v administer_v unto_o they_o have_v they_o not_o a_o proof_n of_o christ_n speak_v in_o they_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n make_v the_o word_n mighty_a unto_o all_o its_o proper_a end_n and_o as_o the_o thing_n itself_o so_o variety_n of_o his_o dispensation_n manifest_v themselves_o also_o unto_o the_o experience_n of_o believer_n who_o see_v not_o how_o different_a be_v the_o gift_n of_o man_n the_o holy_a ghost_n divide_v unto_o every_o one_o as_o he_o will_v and_o the_o experience_n which_o they_o have_v themselves_o who_o have_v receive_v these_o gift_n of_o the_o especial_a assistance_n which_o they_o receive_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o they_o may_v also_o be_v plead_v indeed_o the_o profaneness_n of_o a_o contrary_a apprehension_n be_v intolerable_a among_o such_o as_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n for_o any_o to_o boast_v themselves_o they_o be_v sufficient_a of_o themselves_o for_o the_o stewardly_a dispensation_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o their_o own_o endowment_n natural_a or_o acquire_v and_o the_o exercise_n of_o they_o without_o a_o participation_n of_o any_o peculiar_a spiritual_a gift_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o presumption_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o renunciation_n of_o all_o or_o any_o interest_n in_o the_o promise_v of_o christ_n make_v unto_o the_o church_n or_o the_o continuance_n of_o his_o presence_n therein_o let_v man_n be_v never_o so_o well_o persuade_v of_o their_o own_o ability_n let_v they_o pride_n themselves_o in_o their_o performance_n in_o reflection_n of_o
because_o i_o have_v discourse_v concern_v it_o elsewhere_o §_o 4_o with_o respect_n unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v require_v unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n skill_n to_o divide_v the_o word_n aright_o which_o be_v 〈…〉_z a_o peculiar_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o tim._n 〈…〉_z study_v to_o approve_v thyself_o unto_o god_n a_o 〈…〉_z ●hat_n need_v not_o to_o be_v ashamed_a right_o 〈…〉_z word_n of_o truth_n both_o the_o former_a clause_n depend_v on_o the_o latter_a if_o a_o minister_n 〈◊〉_d be_v accept_v with_o god_n in_o his_o work_n if_o he_o will_v 〈◊〉_d find_v at_o the_o last_o day_n a_o workman_n that_o need_v 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v ashamed_a that_o be_v such_o a_o builder_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o who_o work_n be_v meet_v proper_a and_o useful_a he_o must_v take_v care_n to_o divide_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o his_o dispensation_n aright_o or_o in_o a_o due_a manner_n minister_n be_v steward_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o dispenser_n of_o the_o ministery_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v require_v of_o they_o that_o they_o give_v unto_o all_o the_o servant_n that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n or_o do_v belong_v unto_o it_o a_o meet_a portion_n according_a unto_o their_o want_n occasion_n and_o service_n suitable_a unto_o the_o will_n and_o wisdom_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n luke_n 12._o 42_o 43._o who_o be_v that_o faithful_a and_o wise_a steward_n who_o his_o master_n shall_v make_v ruler_n over_o his_o household_n to_o give_v they_o their_o portion_n of_o meat_n in_o due_a season_n for_o this_o give_n of_o provision_n and_o a_o portion_n of_o meat_n unto_o the_o household_n of_o christ_n consist_v principal_o in_o the_o right_o divide_v and_o distribution_n of_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v the_o take_v out_o from_o those_o great_a store_n of_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o it_o be_v cut_v off_o a_o portion_n suitable_a unto_o the_o various_a condition_n of_o those_o in_o the_o family_n hèrein_o consist_v the_o principal_a skill_n of_o a_o scribe_n furnish_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n with_o the_o wisdom_n before_o describe_v and_o without_o this_o a_o ●●●mon_a course_n of_o dispense_v or_o preach_v the_o 〈◊〉_d without_o difference_v of_o person_n and_o 〈…〉_z ever_o it_o may_v be_v gild_a over_o with_o a_o 〈…〉_z word_n and_o oratory_n be_v shameful_a 〈◊〉_d house_n of_o god_n now_o unto_o this_o skill_n 〈…〉_z be_v require_v 1_o a_o sound_a judgement_n in_o 〈…〉_z ●●ncerning_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o th●se_a 〈…〉_z any_o one_o be_v so_o dispense_n the_o word_n 〈…〉_z of_o a_o shepherd_n to_o know_v the_o state_n of_o his_o flock_n and_o unless_o he_o do_v so_o he_o will_v never_o feed_v they_o profitable_o he_o must_v know_v whether_o they_o be_v babe_n or_o young_a man_n or_o old_a whether_o they_o need_v milk_n or_o strong_a meat_n whether_o they_o be_v skilful_a or_o unskilful_a in_o the_o word_n of_o righteousness_n whether_o they_o have_v their_o sense_n exercise_v to_o discern_v good_a and_o evil_a or_o not_o or_o whether_o their_o hearer_n be_v mix_v with_o all_o these_o sort_n whether_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n they_o be_v convert_v unto_o god_n or_o be_v yet_o in_o a_o unregenerate_a condition_n what_o probable_o be_v their_o principal_a temptation_n their_o hindrance_n and_o furtherance_n what_o be_v their_o growth_n or_o decay_n in_o religion_n he_o that_o be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v a_o competent_a judgement_n concern_v these_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o circumstance_n of_o the_o flock_n so_o as_o to_o be_v steer_v thereby_o in_o his_o work_n will_v never_o evidence_n himself_o to_o be_v a_o workman_n that_o need_v not_o to_o be_v ashamed_a 2_o a_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o way_n and_o method_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n grace_n on_o the_o mind_n and_o heart_n of_o man_n that_o he_o may_v pursue_v and_o comply_v with_o its_o design_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n nothing_o be_v by_o many_o more_o despise_a than_o a_o understanding_n hereof_o yet_o be_v nothing_o more_o necessary_a to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o preach_v be_v vehiculum_fw-la gratiae_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v order_v so_o as_o it_o may_v comply_v with_o its_o design_n in_o its_o whole_a work_n on_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n he_o therefore_o who_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o the_o ordinary_a method_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o grace_n sight_n uncertain_o in_o his_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n like_o a_o man_n beat_v of_o the_o air._n it_o be_v true_a god_n can_v and_o often_o do_v direct_v a_o word_n of_o truth_n speak_v as_o it_o be_v at_o random_n unto_o a_o proper_a effect_n of_o grace_n on_o some_o or_o other_o as_o it_o be_v when_o the_o man_n draw_v a_o bow_n at_o a_o venture_n and_o smite_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n between_o the_o joint_n of_o the_o harness_n but_o ordinary_o a_o man_n be_v not_o like_a to_o hit_v a_o joint_n who_o know_v not_o how_o to_o take_v his_o aim_n 3_o an_o acquaintonce_o with_o the_o nature_n of_o temptation_n with_o the_o especial_a hindrance_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n which_o may_v befall_v those_o unto_o who_o the_o word_n be_v dispense_v be_v in_o like_a manner_n require_v hereunto_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v add_v on_o this_o head_n see_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o ministerial_a skill_n do_v consist_v herein_o 4_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o spiritual_a disease_n distemper_n and_o sickness_n with_o their_o proper_a cure_n and_o remedy_n belong_v hereunto_o for_o the_o want_n hereof_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v oftentimes_o make_v glad_a in_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n and_o those_o of_o the_o righteous_a fill_v with_o sorrow_n the_o hand_n of_o sinner_n be_v strengthen_v and_o those_o who_o be_v look_v towards_o god_n be_v discourage_v or_o turn_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o where_o man_n either_o know_v not_o these_o thing_n or_o do_v not_o or_o can_v apply_v themselves_o skilful_o to_o distribute_v the_o word_n according_a to_o this_o variety_n of_o occasion_n they_o can_v give_v the_o household_n its_o portion_n of_o meat_n in_o season_n and_o he_o that_o want_v this_o spiritual_a gift_n will_v never_o divide_v the_o word_n aright_o unto_o its_o proper_a end_n 2_o tim._n 3._o 16_o 17._o and_o it_o be_v lamentable_a to_o consider_v what_o shameful_a work_n be_v make_v for_o want_v hereof_o in_o the_o preach_a of_o some_o man_n yea_o how_o the_o whole_a gift_n be_v lose_v as_o to_o its_o power_n use_v and_o benefit_n §_o 5._o three_o the_o gift_n of_o utterance_n also_o belong_v unto_o this_o part_n of_o the_o ministerial_a duty_n in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v particular_o reckon_v by_o the_o apostle_n among_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 5._o 2_o cor._n 8._o 5._o and_o he_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o gift_n may_v abide_v with_o himself_o and_o abound_v in_o he_o ephes._n 6._o 19_o and_o he_o there_o declare_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o consist_v in_o the_o open_n of_o the_o mouth_n bold_o to_o make_v know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o also_o col._n 4._o 3._o now_o this_o utterance_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o a_o natural_a volubility_n of_o speech_n which_o take_v alone_o by_o itself_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v so_o earnest_o pray_v for_o as_o that_o it_o be_v usual_o a_o snare_n to_o they_o that_o have_v it_o and_o a_o trouble_n to_o they_o that_o hear_v they_o nor_o do_v it_o consist_v in_o a_o rhetorical_a ability_n to_o set_v off_o discourse_n with_o a_o flourish_n of_o word_n be_v they_o never_o so_o plausible_a or_o entice_a much_o less_o in_o a_o bold_a corrupt_a of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o preach_v by_o a_o foolish_a affectation_n of_o word_n in_o suppose_a elegancy_n of_o speech_n acquaint_v expression_n and_o the_o like_a effect_n of_o wit_n that_o be_v fancy_n and_o vanity_n but_o four_o thing_n do_v concur_v hereunto_o 1_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o dicendi_fw-la libertas_fw-la the_o word_n we_o translate_v utterance_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v speech_n but_o that_o not_o speech_n in_o general_n but_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o speech_n be_v intend_v be_v evident_a from_o the_o place_n mention_v and_o the_o application_n of_o they_o and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o speech_n as_o be_v elsewhere_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o freedom_n and_o liberty_n in_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o truth_n conceive_v this_o a_o man_n have_v when_o he_o be_v not_o from_o any_o internal_a defect_n or_o
be_v as_o pleadable_a against_o they_o who_o pretend_v to_o exercise_v the_o rule_n and_o power_n of_o his_o present_a kingdom_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o potestative_a administration_n of_o the_o world_n when_o our_o saviour_n forbid_v all_o rule_n unto_o his_o disciple_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o then_o possess_v all_o sovereign_a power_n in_o the_o world_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o with_o they_o that_o some_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o exercise_v dominion_n over_o other_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v serve_v one_o another_o in_o love_n the_o great_a condescension_n unto_o service_n be_v require_v of_o they_o who_o be_v otherwise_o most_o eminent_a he_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o take_v from_o they_o or_o divest_v they_o of_o that_o spiritual_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o commit_v unto_o they_o his_o design_n therefore_o be_v to_o declare_v what_o that_o authority_n be_v not_o and_o how_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v exercise_v a_o lordly_a or_o despotical_a power_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v nor_o be_v it_o to_o be_v exercise_v by_o penal_a law_n court_n and_o coercive_a jurisdiction_n which_o be_v the_o way_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o all_o power_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o if_o that_o kind_n of_o power_n and_o rule_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n exercise_v in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o forbid_v by_o our_o saviour_n no_o man_n live_a can_v tell_v what_o be_v so_o for_o as_o to_o meekness_n moderation_n patience_n equity_n righteousness_n they_o be_v more_o easy_a to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o legal_a administration_n of_o power_n among_o the_o gentile_n than_o in_o these_o use_v in_o many_o church_n but_o such_o a_o rule_n be_v signify_v unto_o they_o the_o authority_n whereof_o from_o whence_o it_o proceed_v be_v spiritual_a its_o object_n the_o mind_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n only_o and_o the_o way_n of_o who_o administration_n be_v to_o consist_v in_o a_o humble_a holy_a spiritual_a application_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o they_o 2_o the_o end_n of_o this_o rule_n be_v mere_o and_o sole_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n all_o the_o power_n that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v either_o in_o or_o over_o the_o church_n be_v but_o unto_o their_o edification_n 2_o cor._n 10._o 8._o and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o the_o increase_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n in_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o in_o the_o subdue_a and_o mortify_v of_o sin_n in_o fruitfulness_n in_o good_a work_n in_o the_o confirmation_n and_o consolation_n of_o they_o that_o stand_v in_o the_o raise_n up_o they_o that_o be_v fall_v and_o the_o recovery_n of_o they_o that_o wander_v in_o the_o growth_n and_o flourish_a of_o mutual_a love_n and_o peace_n and_o whatever_o rule_n be_v exercise_v in_o the_o church_n unto_o any_o other_o end_n be_v foreign_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o tend_v only_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n itself_o 3_o in_o the_o way_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o rule_n and_o government_n two_o thing_n may_v be_v consider_v 1_o what_o be_v internal_a in_o the_o qualification_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o they_o by_o who_o it_o be_v to_o be_v exercise_v such_o be_v wisdom_n diligence_n love_n meekness_n patience_n and_o the_o like_a evangelical_n endowment_n 2_o what_o be_v external_a or_o what_o be_v the_o outward_a rule_n of_o it_o and_o this_o be_v the_o word_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n alone_o as_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o declare_v §_o 9_o from_o these_o thing_n it_o may_v appear_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n in_o general_a of_o that_o skill_n in_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n which_o we_o assert_v to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o ability_n or_o skill_n in_o the_o canon_n or_o civil_a law_n or_o rule_n of_o man_n if_o only_o a_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o nature_n and_o course_n of_o some_o court_n proceed_v litigious_o by_o citation_n process_n legal_a plead_n issue_v in_o pecuniary_a mulct_n outward_a coertion_n or_o imprisonment_n i_o shall_v willing_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v no_o peculiar_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n require_v thereunto_o but_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o be_v as_o we_o have_v declare_v it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v exercise_v aright_o without_o the_o especial_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v any_o man_n of_o himself_o sufficient_a for_o these_o thing_n will_v any_o man_n undertake_v of_o himself_o to_o know_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o adminster_n the_o power_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o and_o about_o they_o wherefore_o the_o apostle_n in_o many_o place_n teach_v that_o wisdom_n skill_n and_o understanding_n to_o administer_v the_o authority_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n unto_o its_o edification_n with_o faithfulness_n and_o diligence_n be_v a_o especial_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 12._o 6_o 8._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 28._o it_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o make_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n its_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n by_o call_v they_o to_o their_o office_n act_v 20._o 28._o and_o what_o he_o call_v any_o man_n unto_o that_o he_o furnish_v he_o with_o ability_n for_o the_o discharge_v of_o and_o so_o have_v we_o give_v a_o brief_a account_n of_o these_o ordinary_a gift_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n communicate_v unto_o the_o constant_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o will_v do_v so_o unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o all_o thing_n have_v moreover_o in_o our_o passage_n manifest_v the_o dependence_n of_o the_o ministry_n on_o this_o work_n of_o he_o so_o that_o we_o need_v no_o addition_n of_o pain_n to_o demonstrate_v that_o where_o he_o go_v not_o before_o in_o the_o communication_n of_o they_o no_o outward_a order_n call_v or_o constitution_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v any_o one_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n §_o 10_o there_o be_v gift_n which_o respect_v duty_n only_o such_o be_v those_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n continue_v to_o communicate_v unto_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o great_a variety_n of_o degree_n according_a to_o the_o place_n and_o condition_n which_o they_o be_v in_o unto_o their_o own_o and_o the_o church_n edification_n there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o we_o shall_v insist_v upon_o they_o in_o particular_a see_v they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o they_o which_o be_v continue_v unto_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v require_v to_o excel_v in_o they_o so_o as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o go_v before_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o their_o exercise_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v promise_v by_o christ_n unto_o all_o his_o disciple_n unto_o all_o believer_n unto_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o not_o unto_o the_o guide_n of_o it_o only_o to_o they_o he_o be_v so_o in_o a_o especial_a manner_n with_o respect_n unto_o their_o office_n power_n and_o duty_n but_o not_o absolute_o or_o only_o as_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n he_o quicken_v animate_v and_o unite_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o in_o and_o unto_o christ_n jesus_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13._o and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o administrator_n of_o all_o supernatural_a gift_n he_o furnish_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o all_o its_o member_n with_o spiritual_a ability_n unto_o its_o edification_n ephes._n 4._o 15_o 16._o col._n 2._o 19_o and_o without_o they_o in_o some_o measure_n or_o degree_n ordinary_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o discharge_v our_o duty_n unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o §_o 11._o 1._o these_o gift_n be_v a_o great_a mean_n and_o help_n to_o excite_v and_o exercise_v grace_n itself_o without_o which_o it_o will_v be_v lifeless_a and_o apt_a to_o decay_v man_n grow_v in_o grace_n by_o the_o due_a exercise_n of_o their_o own_o gift_n in_o duty_n wherefore_o every_o individual_a person_n on_o his_o own_o account_n do_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o they_o with_o respect_n unto_o the_o exercise_n and_o improvement_n of_o grace_n zech._n 12._o 10._o 2_o most_o man_n have_v it_o may_v be_v such_o duty_n incumbent_a on_o they_o with_o respect_n unto_o other_o as_o they_o can_v discharge_v aright_o without_o the_o especial_a aid_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o this_o kind_n so_o be_v it_o with_o all_o they_o who_o have_v family_n to_o take_v care_n of_o and_o provide_v for_o for_o ordinary_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o instruct_v their_o child_n and_o servant_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o go_v before_o they_o in_o that_o worship_n which_o god_n require_v of_o
they_o as_o abraham_n do_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o hereunto_o some_o spiritual_a ability_n be_v requisite_a for_o none_o can_v teach_v other_o more_o than_o they_o know_v themselves_o nor_o perform_v spiritual_a worship_n without_o some_o spiritual_a gift_n unless_o they_o will_v betake_v themselves_o unto_o such_o shift_n as_o we_o have_v before_o on_o good_a ground_n reject_v 3._o every_o member_n of_o a_o church_n in_o order_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o christ_n possess_v some_o place_n use_v and_o office_n in_o the_o body_n which_o it_o can_v fill_v up_o unto_o the_o benefit_n and_o ornament_n of_o the_o whole_a without_o some_o spiritual_a gift_n these_o place_n be_v various_a some_o of_o great_a use_n than_o other_o and_o of_o more_o necessity_n unto_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n but_o all_o be_v useful_a in_o their_o kind_n this_o our_o apostle_n dispute_v at_o large_a 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o 20_o etc._n etc._n all_o believer_n in_o due_a order_n do_v become_v one_o body_n by_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o union_n unto_o the_o same_o head_n those_o who_o do_v not_o so_o partake_v of_o the_o one_o spirit_n who_o be_v not_o unite_v unto_o the_o head_n do_v not_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n whatever_o place_n they_o seem_v to_o hold_v therein_o of_o those_o that_o do_v so_o some_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o eye_n some_o as_o a_o hand_n and_o some_o as_o a_o foot_n all_o these_o useful_a in_o their_o several_a place_n and_o needful_a unto_o one_o another_o none_o of_o they_o be_v so_o high_o exalt_v as_o to_o have_v the_o least_o occasion_n of_o be_v lift_v up_o as_o though_o he_o have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o spirit_n distribute_v unto_o every_o one_o several_o as_o he_o will_v not_o all_o unto_o any_o one_o save_v only_o unto_o the_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n from_o who_o we_o all_o receive_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o gift_n nor_o be_v any_o so_o depress_v or_o useless_a as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o body_n nor_o that_o the_o body_n have_v no_o need_n of_o it_o but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o place_n and_o station_n concur_v to_o the_o unity_n strength_n beauty_n and_o growth_n of_o the_o body_n which_o thing_n our_o apostle_n dispute_v at_o large_a in_o the_o place_n mention_v 4_o hereby_o be_v supply_n communicate_v unto_o the_o whole_a from_o the_o head_n ephes._n 4._o 15_o 16._o col._n 2._o 19_o it_o be_v of_o the_o body_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o its_o officer_n that_o the_o apostle_n discourse_v in_o those_o place_n and_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o whole_a it_o be_v to_o speak_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n every_o one_o in_o his_o several_a place_n and_o station_n and_o herein_o god_n have_v so_o order_v the_o union_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o itself_o unto_o and_o in_o dependence_n on_o its_o head_n as_o that_o through_o and_o by_o not_o only_o the_o supply_n of_o every_o joint_n which_o may_v express_v either_o the_o officer_n or_o more_o eminent_a member_n of_o it_o but_o the_o effectual_a work_n of_o every_o part_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v impart_v to_o the_o whole_a the_o body_n may_v edify_v itself_o and_o be_v increase_v wherefore_o 5_o the_o scripture_n be_v express_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v communicate_v of_o those_o gift_n unto_o private_a believer_n and_o direct_v they_o in_o that_o duty_n wherein_o they_o be_v to_o be_v exercise_v 1_o pet._n 4._o 10._o every_o one_o that_o be_v every_o believer_n walk_v in_o the_o order_n and_o fellowship_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o attend_v unto_o the_o discharge_v of_o his_o duty_n according_a as_o he_o have_v receive_v spiritual_a ability_n so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o in_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n chap._n 15._o 14._o as_o they_o all_o of_o they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o covet_v the_o best_a gift_n which_o they_o do_v with_o success_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 31._o and_o hereon_o depend_v the_o command_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o those_o duty_n which_o in_o the_o ability_n of_o these_o gift_n receive_v they_o be_v to_o perform_v so_o be_v they_o all_o to_o admonish_v one_o another_o to_o exhort_v one_o another_o to_o build_v up_o one_o another_o in_o their_o most_o holy_a faith_n and_o it_o be_v the_o loss_n of_o those_o spiritual_a gift_n which_o have_v introduce_v among_o many_o a_o utter_a neglect_n of_o these_o duty_n so_o as_o they_o be_v scarce_o hear_v of_o among_o the_o generality_n of_o they_o that_o be_v call_v christian_n but_o bless_v be_v god_n we_o have_v large_a and_o full_a experience_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o this_o dispensation_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o eminent_a ability_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o private_a christian_n however_o they_o may_v be_v despise_v by_o they_o who_o know_v they_o not_o by_o some_o i_o confess_v they_o have_v be_v abuse_v some_o have_v presume_v on_o they_o beyond_o the_o line_n and_o measure_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v some_o have_v be_v puff_v up_o with_o they_o some_o have_v use_v they_o disorderly_o in_o church_n and_o to_o their_o hurt_n some_o have_v boast_v of_o what_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v all_o which_o miscarriage_n also_o befall_v the_o primitive_a church_n and_o i_o have_v rather_o have_v the_o order_n rule_n spirit_n and_o practice_n of_o those_o church_n that_o be_v plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n with_o all_o their_o trouble_n and_o disadvantage_n than_o the_o carnal_a peace_n of_o other_o in_o their_o open_a degeneracy_n from_o all_o those_o thing_n §_o 12._o it_o remain_v only_o that_o we_o inquire_v how_o man_n may_v come_v unto_o or_o attain_v a_o participation_n of_o these_o gift_n whether_o ministerial_a or_o more_o private_a and_o unto_o this_o end_n we_o may_v observe_v 1_o that_o they_o be_v not_o communicate_v unto_o any_o by_o a_o sudden_a afflatus_fw-la or_o extraordinary_a infusion_n as_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n and_o tongue_n which_o be_v bestow_v on_o the_o apostle_n and_o many_o of_o the_o first_o convert_v that_o dispensation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v long_o since_o cease_v and_o where_o it_o be_v now_o pretend_a unto_o by_o any_o it_o may_v just_o be_v suspect_v as_o a_o enthusiastic_a delusion_n for_o as_o the_o end_n of_o those_o gift_n which_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n exceed_v the_o whole_a power_n of_o all_o our_o faculty_n be_v cease_v so_o be_v their_o communication_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o also_o yet_o this_o i_o must_v say_v that_o the_o infusion_n of_o spiritual_a light_n into_o the_o mind_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o gift_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v be_v wrought_v sometime_o sudden_o or_o in_o a_o short_a season_n the_o concomitancy_n of_o gift_n in_o some_o good_a measure_n be_v oftentimes_o sudden_a with_o a_o appearance_n of_o something_o extraordinary_a as_o may_v be_v manifest_v in_o instance_n of_o several_a sort_n 2_o these_o gift_n be_v not_o absolute_o attainable_a by_o our_o own_o diligence_n and_o endeavour_n in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n without_o respect_n unto_o the_o sovereign_n will_v and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n suppose_v there_o be_v such_o mean_n of_o the_o attainment_n and_o improvement_n of_o they_o and_o that_o several_a person_n do_v with_o the_o same_o measure_n of_o natural_a ability_n and_o diligence_n use_v those_o mean_n for_o that_o end_n yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o all_o must_v be_v equal_o partaker_n of_o they_o they_o be_v not_o the_o immediate_a product_n of_o our_o own_o endeavour_n no_o not_o as_o under_o a_o ordinary_a blessing_n upon_o they_o for_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d arbitrary_a largess_n or_o gift_n which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n work_v in_o all_o person_n several_o as_o he_o will_n hence_o we_o see_v the_o different_a event_n that_o be_v among_o they_o who_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o same_o study_n and_o endeavour_n some_o be_v endue_v with_o eminent_a gift_n some_o scarce_o attain_v unto_o any_o that_o be_v useful_a and_o some_o despise_v they_o name_n and_o thing_n there_o be_v therefore_o a_o immediate_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o collation_n of_o these_o spiritual_a ability_n which_o be_v unaccountable_a by_o the_o measure_n of_o natural_a part_n and_o industry_n yet_o i_o say_v 4_o that_o ordinary_o they_o be_v both_o attain_v and_o increase_v by_o the_o due_a use_n of_o mean_n suit_v thereunto_o as_o grace_n be_v also_o which_o none_o but_o pelagian_n affirm_v to_o be_v absolute_o in_o the_o power_n of_o our_o own_o wi_n and_o the_o name_n of_o these_o mean_n shall_v put_v
a_o issue_n unto_o this_o discourse_n among_o they_o in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v require_v a_o due_a preparation_n of_o soul_n by_o humility_n meekness_n and_o teachableness_n the_o holy_a spirit_n take_v no_o delight_n to_o impart_v of_o his_o especial_a gift_n unto_o proud_a self-conceited_a man_n to_z man_n vain_o puff_v up_o in_o their_o own_o fleshly_a mind_n the_o same_o must_v be_v say_v concern_v other_o vicious_a and_o deprave_a habit_n of_o mind_n by_o which_o moreover_o they_o be_v ofttimes_o expel_v and_o cast_v out_o after_o they_o have_v be_v in_o some_o measure_n receive_v and_o in_o this_o case_n i_o need_v not_o mention_v those_o by_o who_o all_o these_o gift_n be_v despise_v it_o will_v be_v a_o wonder_n indeed_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o they_o or_o at_o least_o if_o they_o shall_v abide_v with_o they_o 2_o prayer_n be_v a_o principal_a mean_n for_o their_o attainment_n this_o the_o apostle_n direct_v unto_o when_o he_o enjoin_v we_o earnest_o to_o desire_v the_o best_a gift_n for_o this_o desire_n be_v to_o be_v act_v by_o prayer_n and_o no_o otherwise_o 3_o diligence_n in_o the_o thing_n about_o which_o these_o gift_n be_v conversant_a study_n and_o meditation_n on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o due_a use_n of_o mean_n for_o the_o attain_v a_o right_a understanding_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o will_v therein_o be_v that_o which_o i_o intend_v for_o in_o this_o course_n conscientious_o attend_v unto_o it_o be_v that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o holy_a spirit_n come_v in_o and_o join_v his_o aid_n and_o assistance_n for_o furnish_v of_o the_o mind_n with_o those_o spiritual_a endowment_n 4_o the_o growth_n increase_v and_o improvement_n of_o these_o gift_n depend_v on_o their_o faithful_a use_n according_a as_o our_o duty_n do_v require_v it_o be_v trade_n alone_o that_o increase_v talent_n and_o exercise_n in_o a_o way_n of_o duty_n that_o improve_v gift_n without_o this_o they_o will_v first_o wither_v and_o then_o perish_v and_o by_o a_o neglect_n hereof_o be_v they_o lose_v every_o day_n in_o some_o partial_o in_o some_o total_o and_o in_o some_o to_o a_o contempt_n hatred_n and_o blasphemy_n of_o what_o themselves_o have_v receive_v last_o man_n natural_a endowment_n with_o elocution_n memory_n judgement_n and_o the_o like_a improve_v by_o read_v learn_v and_o diligent_a study_n do_v enlarge_v set_v off_o and_o adorn_v these_o gift_n where_o they_o be_v receive_v finis_fw-la book_n sell_v by_o will._n martial_n at_o the_o bible_n in_o newgate-street_n book_n late_o print_v of_o dr._n owen_n '_o s._n 1._o the_o true_a nature_n of_o a_o gospel_n church_n and_o its_o government_n wherein_o these_o follow_a particular_n be_v distinct_o handle_v i._n the_o subject_a matter_n of_o the_o church_n ii_o formal_a cause_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n iii_o of_o the_o polity_n rule_n or_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n iv._o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n v._o the_o duty_n of_o pastor_n of_o church_n vi_o the_o office_n of_o teacher_n in_o the_o church_n vii_o of_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o rule_v elder_n viii_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o polity_n or_o rule_n with_o the_o duty_n of_o elder_n ix_o of_o deacon_n x._o excommunication_n xi_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o church_n in_o large_a quarto_n price_n bind_v 3_o s._n 2._o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n and_o grace_n price_n bind_v 1_o s._n 3._o a_o brief_a and_o impartial_a account_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n its_o state_n and_o fate_n in_o the_o world_n its_o strength_n and_o weakness_n with_o the_o way_n and_o indication_n of_o the_o ruin_n or_o continuance_n of_o its_o public_a national_a profession_n price_n 6_o d._n 4._o a_o brief_a instruction_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o way_n of_o question_n and_o answer_n with_o a_o explication_n and_o confirmation_n of_o those_o answer_n price_n bind_v 1_o s._n 5._o meditation_n and_o discourse_n concern_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n apply_v unto_o unconverted_a sinner_n and_o saint_n under_o spiritual_a decay_n from_o john_n 17._o 24._o price_n bind_v 1_o s._n 6._o a_o guide_n to_o church-fellowship_n and_o order_n according_a to_o gospel_n institution_n price_n bind_v 6_o d._n these_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o dr._n owen_n work_n that_o be_v in_o print_n be_v sell_v by_o william_n marshal_n at_o the_o bible_n in_o newgate-street_n where_o you_o may_v be_v supply_v of_o other_o author_n book_n follow_v a_o exposition_n of_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n wherein_o the_o vision_n and_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n be_v open_v and_o expound_v by_o that_o late_a reverend_a divine_a hanserd_n knollys_n price_n bind_v 2_o s._n 6_o d._n dr._n crisp_n work_n in_o large_a quarto_fw-la four_o part_n bind_v 7_o s._n a_o plain_a and_o familiar_a conference_n concern_v gospel_n church_n and_o order_n for_o the_o information_n and_o benefit_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v seek_v the_o lord_n their_o god_n and_o ask_v the_o way_n to_o zion_n with_o their_o face_n thitherwards_o price_n bind_v 1_o s._n ashwood_n heavenly_a trade_n or_o the_o best_a merchandise_n price_n bind_v 2_o s._n 6_o d._n ashwood_n best_a treasure_n or_o the_o unsearchable_a riches_n of_o christ._n bind_v 2_o s._n 6_o d._n mr._n mead_n effigy_n late_o engrave_v and_o print_v on_o large_a paper_n price_n 6_o d._n mr._n caryl_n effigy_n large_a paper_n 6_o d._n dr._n owen_n effigy_n in_o large_a paper_n 6_o d._n mr._n bunyan_n effigy_n large_a paper_n 6_o d._n dr._n crisp_n effigy_n in_o paper_n 6_o d._n there_o be_v new_o print_v a_o stitch_v book_n contain_v six_o sheet_n entitle_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o spirit_n teach_v by_o samnel_n how_n price_n 6_o d._n the_o labour_n of_o john_n bunyan_n author_n of_o the_o pilgrim_n progress_n late_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o congregation_n at_o bedford_n collect_v and_o print_v in_o folio_n by_o procurement_n of_o his_o church_n and_o friend_n and_o by_o his_o own_o approbation_n before_o his_o death_n that_o these_o his_o christian_a ministerial_a labour_n may_v be_v preserve_v in_o the_o world_n this_o folio_n contain_v ten_o of_o his_o excellent_a manuscript_n prepare_v for_o the_o press_n before_o his_o death_n and_o ten_o of_o his_o choice_a book_n already_o print_v but_o long_o ago_o grow_v scarce_o and_o not_o now_o to_o be_v have_v their_o title_n be_v as_o follow_v viz._n manuscript_n 1._o a_o exposition_n on_o the_o ten_o first_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n 2._o justification_n by_o impute_v righteousness_n 3._o paul_n departure_n and_o crown_n 4._o israel_n hope_n encourage_v 5._o desire_v of_o the_o righteous_a grant_v 6._o the_o saint_n privilege_n and_o profit_n 7._o christ_n a_o complete_a saviour_n 8._o saint_n knowledge_n of_o christ_n love_n 9_o the_o house_n of_o the_o forest_n of_o lebanon_n 10._o a_o description_n of_o antichrist_n book_n former_o print_v 11._o save_v by_o grace_n 12._o christian_n behaviour_n 13._o a_o discourse_n of_o prayer_n 14._o the_o straight_a gate_n 15._o gospel_n truth_n open_v 16._o light_n for_o they_o in_o darkness_n 17._o instructsons_n for_o the_o ignorant_a 18._o a_o map_n of_o salvation_n etc._n etc._n 19_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n 20._o the_o resurrection_n price_n bind_v 14_o s._n the_o application_n of_o the_o foregoing_a discourse_n with_o respect_n unto_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o spirit_n towards_o believer_n and_o his_o holy_a operation_n in_o they_o and_o upon_o they_o there_o be_v sundry_a particular_a duty_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o immediate_a object_n prescribe_v unto_o they_o and_o they_o be_v those_o whereby_o on_o our_o part_n we_o comply_v with_o he_o in_o his_o work_n of_o grace_n whereby_o it_o be_v carry_v on_o and_o render_v useful_a unto_o we_o now_o whereas_o this_o holy_a spirit_n be_v a_o divine_a person_n and_o he_o act_n in_o all_o thing_n towards_o we_o as_o a_o free_a agent_n according_a unto_o his_o own_o will_n the_o thing_n enjoin_v we_o with_o respect_n unto_o he_o be_v those_o whereby_o we_o may_v carry_v ourselves_o aright_o towards_o such_o a_o one_o namely_o as_o he_o be_v a_o holy_a divine_a intelligent_a person_n work_v free_o in_o and_o towards_o we_o for_o our_o good_n and_o they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o first_o whereof_o be_v express_v in_o prohibition_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v unsuit_v unto_o he_o and_o his_o deal_n with_o we_o the_o latter_a in_o command_n for_o our_o attendance_n unto_o such_o duty_n as_o be_v peculiar_o suit_v unto_o a_o compliance_n with_o he_o in_o his_o operation_n in_o both_o which_o our_o obedience_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v with_o a_o peculiar_a regard_n unto_o he_o i_o shall_v begin_v with_o the_o first_o sort_n and_o go_v over_o
he_o expect_v from_o we_o and_o where_o it_o be_v neglect_v because_o of_o his_o concernment_n in_o we_o we_o be_v say_v to_o grieve_v he_o for_o he_o look_v not_o only_o for_o our_o obedience_n but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v fill_v up_o with_o joy_n love_n and_o delight_n when_o we_o attend_v unto_o duty_n with_o a_o unwilling_a willing_a mind_n when_o we_o apply_v ourselves_o unto_o any_o act_n of_o obedience_n in_o a_o bondage_n or_o servile_a frame_n we_o grieve_v he_o who_o have_v deserve_v other_o thing_n of_o we_o 3_o when_o we_o lose_v and_o forget_v the_o sense_n and_o impression_n of_o signal_n mercy_n receive_v by_o he_o so_o the_o apostle_n to_o give_v efficacy_n unto_o his_o prohibition_n add_v the_o signal_n benefit_n which_o we_o receive_v by_o he_o in_o that_o he_o seal_v we_o to_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n which_o what_o it_o be_v and_o wherein_o it_o do_v consist_v have_v be_v declare_v and_o hence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o dwell_n in_o believer_n for_o as_o such_o he_o seal_v they_o whereas_o therefore_o in_o and_o by_o sin_n we_o forget_v the_o great_a grace_n kindness_n and_o condescension_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o his_o dwell_n in_o we_o and_o by_o various_a way_n communicate_v of_o the_o love_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n unto_o we_o we_o may_v be_v well_o say_v to_o grieve_v he_o and_o certain_o this_o consideration_n together_o with_o that_o of_o the_o vile_a ingratitude_n and_o horrible_a folly_n there_o be_v in_o neglect_v and_o defile_v his_o dwelling-place_n with_o the_o danger_n of_o his_o withdraw_n from_o we_o on_o the_o continuance_n of_o our_o provocation_n aught_o to_o be_v as_o effectual_a a_o motive_n unto_o universal_a holiness_n and_o constant_a watchfulness_n therein_o as_o any_o can_v be_v propose_v unto_o we_o 3_o some_z sin_z there_o be_v which_o in_o a_o especial_a manner_n above_o other_o do_v grieve_v the_o holy_a spirit_n these_o our_o apostle_n express_o discourse_v of_o 1_o cor._n 3._o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o 20._o and_o by_o the_o connection_n of_o the_o word_n in_o this_o place_n he_o seem_v to_o make_v corrupt_a communication_n which_o always_o have_v a_o tendency_n unto_o corruption_n of_o conversation_n to_o be_v a_o sin_n of_o this_o nature_n ver_fw-la 29_o 30._o second_o that_o which_o we_o have_v render_v to_o vex_v he_o isa._n 63._o 10._o be_v but_o the_o heighten_v and_o aggravation_n of_o his_o be_v grieve_v by_o our_o continuance_n and_o it_o may_v be_v obstinacy_n in_o those_o way_n whereby_o he_o be_v grieve_v for_o this_o be_v the_o progress_n in_o these_o thing_n if_o those_o who_o we_o be_v concern_v in_o as_o child_n or_o other_o relation_n do_v fall_n into_o miscarriage_n and_o sin_n we_o be_v first_o grieve_v by_o it_o this_o grief_n in_o ourselves_o be_v attend_v with_o pity_n and_o compassion_n towards_o they_o with_o a_o earnest_a endeavour_n for_o their_o recovery_n but_o if_o notwithstanding_o all_o our_o endeavour_n and_o the_o application_n of_o mean_n for_o their_o reducement_n they_o continue_v to_o go_v on_o froward_o in_o their_o way_n then_o be_v we_o vex_v at_o they_o which_o include_v a_o addition_n of_o anger_n and_o indignation_n unto_o our_o former_a sorrow_n or_o grief_n yet_o in_o this_o posture_n of_o thing_n we_o cease_v not_o to_o attempt_v their_o cure_n for_o a_o season_n which_o if_o it_o succeed_v not_o but_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o obstinacy_n than_o we_o resolve_v to_o treat_v with_o they_o no_o more_o but_o to_o leave_v they_o to_o themselves_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o upon_o our_o satisfaction_n of_o their_o resolution_n for_o a_o continuance_n in_o way_n of_o sin_n and_o debauchery_n we_o deal_v with_o they_o as_o their_o enemy_n and_o labour_n to_o bring_v they_o unto_o punishment_n and_o for_o our_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o provocation_n this_o whole_a scheme_n of_o thing_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o respect_n unto_o they_o how_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v grieve_v and_o on_o what_o occasion_n have_v be_v declare_v upon_o a_o continuance_n in_o those_o way_n wherewith_o he_o be_v grieve_v he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v vex_v that_o we_o may_v understand_v there_o be_v also_o anger_n and_o displeasure_n towards_o we_o yet_o he_o forsake_v we_o not_o yet_o he_o take_v not_o from_o we_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o our_o recovery_n but_o if_o we_o discover_v a_o obstinacy_n in_o our_o way_n and_o a_o untreatable_a perverseness_n than_o he_o will_v cast_v we_o off_o and_o deal_v with_o we_o no_o more_o for_o our_o recovery_n and_o woe_n unto_o we_o when_o he_o shall_v depart_v from_o we_o so_o when_o the_o old_a world_n will_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o repentance_n by_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o preach_a of_o noah_n 1_o pet._n 3._o 19_o 20._o god_n say_v thereon_o that_o his_o spirit_n shall_v give_v over_o and_o not_o always_o contend_v with_o man_n gen._n 6._o 3._o now_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n towards_o man_n obstinate_a in_o way_n of_o sin_n after_o he_o have_v be_v long_o grieve_v and_o vex_v comprise_v three_o thing_n 1_o a_o subduction_n from_o they_o of_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n either_o total_o by_o the_o removal_n of_o their_o light_n and_o candlestick_n all_o way_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n unto_o they_o rev._n 2._o 5._o or_o as_o unto_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o word_n towards_o they_o where_o the_o outward_a dispensation_n of_o it_o be_v continue_v so_o that_o hear_v they_o shall_v hear_v but_o not_o understand_v isa._n 6._o 9_o john_n 12._o 40._o for_o by_o the_o word_n it_o be_v that_o he_o strive_v with_o the_o soul_n and_o mind_n of_o men._n 2_o a_o forbearance_n of_o all_o chastisement_n out_o of_o a_o gracious_a design_n to_o heal_v and_o recover_v they_o isa._n 1._o 6._o 3_o a_o give_v of_o they_o up_o unto_o themselves_o or_o leave_v they_o unto_o their_o own_o way_n which_o although_o it_o seem_v only_o a_o consequent_a of_o the_o two_o former_a and_o to_o be_v include_v in_o they_o yet_o be_v there_o indeed_o in_o it_o a_o positive_a act_n of_o the_o anger_n and_o displeasure_n of_o god_n which_o direct_o influence_v the_o event_n of_o thing_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o give_v up_o unto_o their_o own_o heart_n lust_n as_o to_o be_v bind_v in_o they_o as_o in_o chain_n of_o darkness_n unto_o follow_v vengeance_n rom._n 1._o 26_o 28._o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o he_o become_v at_o length_n a_o profess_a enemy_n unto_o such_o obstinate_a sinner_n isa._n 63._o 10._o they_o rebel_v and_o vex_v his_o holy_a spirit_n therefore_o he_o be_v turn_v to_o be_v their_o enemy_n and_o he_o seek_v against_o they_o this_o be_v the_o length_n of_o his_o proceed_n against_o obstinate_a sinner_n in_o this_o world_n and_o herein_o also_o three_o thing_n be_v include_v 1_o he_o come_v upon_o they_o as_o a_o enemy_n to_o spoil_v they_o this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o a_o enemy_n do_v when_o he_o come_v to_o fight_v against_o any_o he_o spoil_v they_o of_o what_o they_o have_v have_v such_o person_n have_v any_o light_n or_o conviction_n any_o gift_n or_o spiritual_a ability_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v now_o become_v their_o profess_a enemy_n he_o spoil_v they_o of_o it_o all_o from_o he_o that_o have_v not_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o even_o that_o which_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v see_v he_o neither_o have_v nor_o use_v his_o gift_n or_o talon_n unto_o any_o save_a end_n be_v now_o at_o a_o open_a enmity_n with_o he_o who_o leut_fw-fr it_o he_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o 2_o he_o will_v come_v upon_o they_o with_o spiritual_a judgement_n smite_v they_o with_o blindness_n of_o mind_n and_o obstinacy_n of_o will_n fill_v they_o with_o folly_n giddiness_n and_o madness_n in_o their_o way_n of_o sin_n which_o sometime_o shall_v produce_v most_o doleful_a effect_n in_o themselves_o and_o other_o 3_o he_o will_v cast_v they_o out_o of_o his_o territory_n if_o they_o have_v be_v member_n of_o church_n he_o will_v order_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o cast_v out_o of_o they_o 4_o he_o frequent_o give_v they_o in_o this_o world_n a_o fore-taste_a of_o that_o everlasting_a vengeance_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o they_o such_o be_v those_o horror_n of_o conscience_n and_o other_o terrible_a effect_n of_o a_o utter_a desperation_n which_o he_o just_o righteous_o and_o holy_o send_v upon_o the_o mind_n and_o soul_n of_o some_o of_o they_o and_o these_o thing_n will_v he_o do_v as_o to_o demonstrate_v the_o greatness_n and_o holiness_n of_o his_o nature_n so_o also_o that_o all_o may_v know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o despise_v
part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o essence_n of_o it_o by_o the_o same_o quicken_a animate_v spirit_n of_o grace_n but_o one_o be_v a_o eye_n another_o a_o hand_n another_o a_o foot_n in_o the_o body_n by_o virtue_n of_o peculiar_a gift_n for_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n eph._n 4._o 7._o §_o 2._o these_o gift_n be_v not_o save_v sanctify_a grace_n those_o be_v not_o so_o in_o themselves_o which_o make_v the_o most_o glorious_a and_o astonish_a appearance_n in_o the_o world_n and_o which_o be_v most_o eminent_o useful_a in_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n such_o as_o be_v those_o that_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a there_o be_v something_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o least_o grace_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o most_o glorious_a gift_n which_o be_v only_o so_o it_o will_v therefore_o be_v part_n of_o our_o work_n to_o show_v wherein_o the_o essential_a difference_n between_o these_o gift_n and_o sanctify_a grace_n do_v consist_v as_o also_o what_o be_v their_o nature_n and_o use_n must_v be_v inquire_v into_o for_o although_o they_o be_v not_o grace_n yet_o they_o be_v that_o without_o which_o the_o church_n can_v subsist_v in_o the_o world_n nor_o can_v believer_n be_v useful_a unto_o one_o another_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n unto_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v they_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v those_o effectual_a operation_n of_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n whereby_o his_o kingdom_n be_v erect_v and_o be_v preserve_v §_o 3._o and_o hereby_o be_v the_o church_n state_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n difference_v from_o that_o under_o the_o old_a there_o be_v indeed_o a_o great_a difference_n between_o their_o ordinance_n and_o we_o they_o be_v suit_v unto_o the_o dark_a apprehension_n which_o they_o have_v of_o spiritual_a thing_n we_o accommodate_v unto_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n more_o plain_o and_o express_o represent_v heavenly_a thing_n unto_o we_o heb._n 10._o 1._o but_o our_o ordinance_n with_o their_o spirit_n will_v be_v carnal_a also_o the_o principal_a difference_n lie_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o due_a performance_n of_o gospel_n worship_n by_o virtue_n of_o these_o gift_n bestow_v on_o man_n for_o that_o very_a end_n hence_o the_o whole_a of_o evangelical_n worship_n be_v call_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o thence_o say_v to_o be_v glorious_a 2_o cor._n 3._o 8._o and_o where_o they_o be_v neglect_v i_o see_v not_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o outward_a worship_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n above_o those_o of_o the_o law_n for_o although_o their_o institution_n be_v accommodate_v unto_o that_o administration_n of_o grace_n and_o truth_n which_o come_v by_o jesus_n christ_n yet_o they_o must_v lose_v their_o whole_a glory_n force_n and_o efficacy_n if_o they_o be_v not_o dispense_v and_o the_o duty_n of_o they_o perform_v by_o virtue_n of_o these_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o therefore_o no_o sort_n of_o man_n by_o who_o they_o be_v neglect_v do_v or_o can_v content_v themselves_o with_o the_o pure_a and_o immix_v gospel_n institution_n in_o these_o thing_n but_o do_v rest_n principal_o in_o the_o outward_a part_n of_o divine_a service_n in_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o find_v out_o for_o as_o gospel_n gift_n be_v useless_a without_o attend_v unto_o gospel_n institution_n so_o gospel_n institution_n be_v find_v to_o be_v fruitless_a and_o unsatisfactory_a without_o the_o attain_n and_o exercise_v of_o gospel_n gift_n §_o 4._o be_v it_o so_o therefore_o that_o these_o gift_n we_o intend_v be_v not_o in_o themselves_o save_v grace_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o to_o be_v despise_v for_o they_o be_v as_o we_o shall_v show_v the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v preserve_v carry_v on_o and_o propagate_v in_o the_o world_n and_o although_o they_o be_v not_o grace_n yet_o be_v they_o the_o great_a mean_n whereby_o all_o grace_n be_v ingenerate_v and_o exercise_v and_o although_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o they_o yet_o the_o order_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v whole_o on_o they_o and_o therefore_o be_v they_o so_o frequent_o mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o great_a privilege_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n direction_n be_v multiply_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n about_o their_o nature_n and_o proper_a use_n and_o we_o be_v command_v earnest_o to_o desire_v and_o labour_n after_o they_o especial_o those_o which_o be_v most_o useful_a and_o subservient_fw-fr unto_o edification_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 31._o and_o as_o the_o neglect_n of_o internal_a save_a grace_n wherein_o the_o power_n of_o godliness_n do_v consist_v have_v be_v the_o bane_n of_o christian_a profession_n as_o to_o obedience_n issue_v in_o that_o form_n of_o it_o which_o be_v consistent_a with_o all_o manner_n of_o lust_n so_o the_o neglect_n of_o these_o gift_n have_v be_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o same_o profession_n as_o to_o worship_n and_o order_n which_o have_v thereon_o issue_v in_o fond_a superstition_n §_o 5._o the_o great_a and_o signal_n promise_v of_o the_o communication_n of_o these_o gift_n be_v record_v psal._n 68_o 18._o thou_o have_v ascend_v on_o high_a thou_o have_v lead_v captivity_n captive_a thou_o have_v receive_v gift_n for_o men._n for_o these_o word_n be_v apply_v by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o that_o communication_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n from_o christ_n whereby_o the_o church_n be_v found_v and_o edify_v ephes._n 4._o 8._o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v foretell_v in_o the_o psalm_n that_o christ_n shall_v receive_v gift_n that_o be_v to_o give_v they_o unto_o man_n as_o that_o expression_n be_v expound_v by_o the_o apostle_n so_o he_o do_v this_o by_o receive_v of_o the_o spirit_n the_o proper_a cause_n and_o immodiate_a author_n of_o they_o all_o as_o peter_n declare_v act_v 2._o 23._o therefore_o be_v by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n exalt_v and_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o have_v shed_v forth_o this_o which_o you_o now_o see_v and_o hear_v speak_v of_o the_o miraculous_a gift_n confer_v on_o the_o aposty_n at_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n for_o these_o gift_n be_v from_o christ_n not_o as_o god_n absolute_o but_o as_o mediator_n in_o which_o capacity_n he_o receive_v all_o from_o the_o father_n in_o a_o way_n of_o free_a donation_n thus_o therefore_o he_o receive_v the_o spirit_n as_o the_o author_n of_o all_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o whereas_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v consist_v in_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o the_o building_n and_o propagation_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v on_o they_o the_o apostle_n after_o all_o the_o instruction_n they_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n whilst_o he_o converse_v with_o they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o also_o after_o his_o resurrection_n be_v command_v not_o to_o go_v about_o the_o great_a work_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v commission_n for_o until_o they_o have_v receive_v power_n by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o in_o the_o communication_n of_o those_o gift_n act_n 1._o 4_o 8._o and_o as_o they_o neither_o may_v nor_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n in_o their_o peculiar_a work_n as_o to_o the_o lay_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n until_o they_o have_v actual_o receive_v those_o extraordinary_a gift_n which_o give_v they_o power_n so_o to_o do_v so_o if_o those_o who_o undertake_v in_o any_o place_n degree_n or_o office_n to_o carry_v on_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o receive_v those_o more_o ordinary_a gift_n which_o be_v continue_v unto_o that_o end_n they_o have_v neither_o right_n to_o undertake_v that_o work_n nor_o power_n to_o perform_v it_o in_o a_o due_a manner_n §_o 6._o the_o thing_n which_o we_o be_v to_o inquire_v into_o concern_v these_o gift_n be_v 1._o their_o name_n 2._o their_o nature_n in_o general_a and_o therein_o how_o they_o agree_v with_o and_o differ_v from_o save_v grace_n 3_o their_o distinction_n 4._o the_o particular_a nature_n of_o they_o and_o 5._o their_o use_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n §_o 7._o 1._o the_o general_a name_n of_o those_o spiritual_a endowment_n which_o we_o intend_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o the_o apostle_n render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d eph._n 4._o 8._o from_o psal._n 68_o 18._o dona_fw-la gift_n that_o be_v they_o be_v free_a and_o undeserved_a effect_n of_o divine_a bounty_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n on_o who_o they_o be_v bestow_v they_o be_v spiritual_a power_n